Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n destroy_v devil_n power_n 8,762 5 5.0803 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68449 A catholike and ecclesiasticall exposition of the holy Gospell after S. Iohn. Gathered out of all the singuler and approued deuines (which the Lorde hath giuen vnto his Church) by Augustine Marlorate. And translated out of Latin into Englishe by Thomas Timme minister. Seene and allovved according to the order appoynted; Novi Testamenti catholica expositio ecclesiastica. English. Selections Marlorat, Augustin, 1506-1562.; Tymme, Thomas, d. 1620. 1575 (1575) STC 17406; ESTC S114256 780,235 632

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o abraham_n and_o this_o fault_n have_v be_v to_o common_a and_o general_a in_o all_o age_n to_o refer_v to_o the_o oryginall_a of_o the_o flesh_n the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o to_o ascribe_v unto_o nature_n those_o remedy_n which_o god_n appoint_v to_o correct_v the_o same_o 34._o jesus_n answer_v they_o verilye_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o whosoever_o commyt_v sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n c._n here_o he_o use_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o contrary_n they_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v free_a but_o he_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o desire_v of_o the_o flesh_n do_v sin_n daily_o bu_n you_o think_v yourselves_o say_v he_o to_o be_v very_o free_a but_o in_o deed_n you_o be_v servant_n for_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o that_o thing_n whereunto_o he_o be_v become_v obedient_a you_o show_v yourselves_o obedient_a to_o sin_n therefore_o you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o by_o consequent_a the_o devil_n be_v your_o lord_n and_o master_n for_o he_o rule_v here_o over_o such_o as_o be_v subject_a to_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v marvel_v that_o man_n be_v not_o convince_v and_o constrain_v by_o their_o own_o experience_n to_o lay_v aside_o all_o pride_n and_o to_o learn_v to_o humble_v themselves_o also_o it_o be_v too_o common_a a_o thing_n at_o this_o day_n that_o the_o more_o a_o man_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o sin_n the_o more_o stout_o he_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o free_a will_n it_o be_v not_o true_a captivitye_n nor_o true_a servitude_n if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n be_v bear_v a_o servant_n of_o a_o handmaid_n or_o be_v take_v in_o the_o war_n or_o do_v by_o law_n sell_v himself_o into_o another_o power_n or_o if_o he_o be_v shut_v into_o close_a prison_n but_o he_o be_v a_o captyve_n which_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o devyll_n r._n and_o such_o captive_n and_o servant_n be_v all_o man_n by_o their_o own_o nature_n 5.12_o rom._n 5.12_o because_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o by_o sin_n death_n come_v upon_o all_o for_o by_o adam_n all_o his_o posterity_n become_v subject_a to_o sin_n to_o affliction_n death_n hell_n and_o to_o the_o cruel_a tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o law_n and_o right_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o kill_v for_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n the_o law_n of_o death_n be_v to_o condemn_v the_o law_n of_o affliction_n be_v to_o bring_v trouble_n and_o misery_n and_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o satan_n be_v to_o destroy_v to_o these_o power_n adam_n have_v make_v we_o and_o all_o our_o strength_n subject_n by_o his_o obedience_n and_o this_o be_v so_o great_a captivitye_n and_o servitude_n as_o great_a can_v be_v devise_v for_o whosoever_o be_v in_o this_o servitude_n and_o bondage_n he_o can_v do_v nothing_o with_o a_o free_a will_n he_o have_v no_o peace_n of_o conscience_n he_o have_v no_o rest_n how_o free_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o body_n out_o of_o this_o captivitye_n no_o captive_n can_v ever_o deliver_v another_o sin_n man_n captive_v to_o sin_n wherefore_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v make_v man_n and_o by_o his_o cross_n death_n and_o resurrection_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o law_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n jest_n the_o same_o shall_v kill_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o death_n lest_o the_o same_o shall_v condemn_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o affliction_n lest_o they_o shall_v trouble_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o to_o misery_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n lest_o he_o shall_v destroy_v us._n and_o he_o have_v restore_v we_o to_o righteousness_n free_a christ_n have_v make_v we_o free_a to_o joy_n to_o life_n and_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o most_o mighty_a god_n and_o have_v make_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v before_o the_o bondeslave_n of_o satan_n also_o this_o true_a liberty_n must_v not_o be_v draw_v to_o carnal_a and_o to_o human_a desire_n but_o to_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v two_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v we_o at_o liberty_n wherefore_o faith_n be_v the_o rular_a and_o mistress_n in_o sin_n in_o affliction_n in_o death_n and_o in_o hell_n sin_n faith_n overcom_v sin_n for_o it_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v so_o deliver_v from_o they_o that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o in_o we_o neither_o can_v destroy_v or_o condemn_v us._n moreover_o the_o relic_n of_o sin_n be_v purge_v away_o by_o faith_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o sin_n the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n which_o be_v christ_n be_v set_v in_o so_o much_o that_o whatsoever_o true_a faith_n command_v be_v dyrect_v to_o the_o word_n which_o be_v christ_n it_o can_v choose_v but_o be_v righteousness_n how_o much_o so_o ever_o it_o seem_v outwardlye_o to_o be_v sin_n thing_n faith_n be_v the_o mistress_n in_o the_o liberty_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n now_o as_o faith_n be_v the_o mistress_n in_o the_o liberiye_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n so_o charitye_n be_v the_o lady_n in_o the_o liberty_n of_o corporal_a thing_n as_o of_o food_n apparel_n money_n and_o such_o kind_n of_o earthly_a benefit_n in_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v be_v so_o free_a as_o charitye_n will_v suffer_v for_o although_o by_o the_o law_n and_o liberty_n of_o faith_n all_o external_a thing_n be_v free_a yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o use_n of_o this_o liberty_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o dispensation_n of_o charity_n as_o all_o meat_n by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v free_a for_o all_o thing_n be_v clean_o and_o that_o which_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o man_n do_v not_o the_o defile_v the_o man_n notwithstanding_o charitye_n dispense_v the_o use_n of_o this_o liberty_n thing_n it_o be_v i.xu._n mat_n xv_o xi_o i._o cor_fw-la 8_o 13._o charity_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o corporal_a thing_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v if_o so_o be_v meat_n offend_v my_o brother_n i_o will_v never_o eat_v flesh_n also_o he_o say_v i_o may_v do_v all_o thing_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a for_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n unto_o charitye_n so_o also_o the_o whole_a earth_n all_o heaven_n and_o the_o whole_a sea_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v free_a by_o faith_n for_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o same_o and_o we_o be_v the_o lord_n wherefore_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v free_a for_o we_o and_o we_o also_o but_o charitye_n dispense_v the_o use_n of_o this_o liberty_n which_o will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o benefit_n myself_o to_o the_o injury_n and_o hurt_n of_o my_o neighbour_n for_o charitye_n steal_v not_o deceive_v not_o play_v not_o the_o tyrant_n neither_o offend_v our_o neighbour_n in_o word_n but_o if_o so_o be_v it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v our_o neighbour_n it_o seek_v to_o win_v the_o same_o by_o intreatye_n and_o for_o money_n take_v nothing_o without_o the_o good_a will_n of_o our_o neighbour_n brieflye_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v call_v into_o the_o most_o excellent_a liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o by_o charitye_n we_o be_v call_v into_o the_o service_n of_o our_o neigboure_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v owe_v nothing_o to_o any_o man_n but_o this_o that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n 8_o rom._n xiij_o 8_o to_o show_v that_o all_o be_v subject_n to_o sin_n who_o he_o deliver_v not_o insomuche_o that_o they_o be_v servant_n even_o from_o their_o birth_n take_v the_o contagion_n and_o infection_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n we_o must_v also_o note_n the_o comparison_n between_o nature_n and_o grace_n upon_o the_o which_o christ_n here_o stand_v whereby_o it_o shall_v easy_o appear_v that_o man_n be_v spoil_v of_o liberty_n except_o they_o recover_v the_o same_o from_o some_o other_o bu_n to_o this_o effect_n partayn_v the_o whoale_n sixth_o chapter_n almost_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o servitude_n of_o sin_n c._n moreover_o this_o servitude_n be_v so_o voluntarye_a that_o they_o which_o necessary_o sin_n be_v notwithstanding_o not_o constrain_v to_o sin_n m._n to_o sin_n here_o noat_v and_o sygnify_v not_o the_o simple_a act_n but_o the_o very_a purpose_n indeavoure_n and_o meditation_n of_o a_o corrupt_a mind_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o deprave_a and_o defile_a nature_n although_o the_o work_n of_o sin_v follow_v not_o and_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v into_o action_n insomuch_o that_o the_o reprobate_n may_v be_v say_v to_o sin_n even_o as_o evell_a tree_n be_v say_v to_o bring_v forth_o evyll_n
man_n for_o filthy_a lucer_n sake_n to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n but_o we_o have_v here_o a_o sheaphearde_v set_v before_o we_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yea_o neither_o peter_n nor_o paul_n but_o christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n bu_n furthermore_o they_o which_o gather_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o day_n a_o mutual_a consent_n and_o agreement_n among_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n insomuche_o that_o none_o shall_v remain_v a_o infidel_n or_o ungodlye_a do_v err_v and_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v consider_v what_o be_v the_o state_n and_o drift_n of_o this_o place_n r._n again_o there_o be_v some_o which_o gather_v of_o this_o place_n that_o after_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n all_o both_o good_a and_o evell_a shall_v be_v gather_v together_o into_o one_o place_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o man_n be_v most_o foolish_a for_o than_o shall_v the_o sheep_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o goat_n 25.46_o mat._n 25.46_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v one_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o goat_n another_o as_o the_o scripture_n plainelye_o testify_v 17._o therefore_o do_v my_o father_n love_v i_o because_o i_o lie_v down_o my_o life_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o again_o b._n this_o be_v a_o digression_n by_o which_o he_o declare_v how_o he_o will_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n not_o that_o he_o ought_v death_n any_o thing_n but_o because_o he_o will_v wyllinglye_o suffer_v the_o same_o that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o life_n unto_o he_o again_o by_o his_o own_o power_n whereupon_o it_o come_v that_o he_o say_v herein_o be_v the_o love_n of_o my_o father_n declare_v in_o i_o herein_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o i_o be_o love_v of_o my_o father_n that_o i_o geve_v my_o life_n to_o take_v it_o to_o i_o again_o for_o this_o be_v divine_a power_n the_o which_o be_v see_v in_o i_o who_o will_v not_o think_v thereby_o that_o i_o be_o great_o love_v of_o my_o father_n c._o there_o be_v also_o another_o far_a cause_n why_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n for_o this_o voice_n be_v not_o hear_v in_o vain_a from_o heaven_n this_o be_v my_o well_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v but_o because_o for_o our_o sake_n also_o he_o be_v make_v man_n and_o because_o the_o father_n love_v he_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v we_o unto_o he_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o love_a because_o our_o salvation_n be_v dear_a unto_o he_o than_o his_o own_o life_n bu_n hereby_o certainlye_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o son_n die_v with_o the_o good_a will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o that_o the_o will_n and_o purpose_n of_o they_o boathe_v be_v all_o one_o in_o redeem_n the_o world_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v a_o wonderful_a commendation_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n which_o geve_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o wonder_v at_o he_o in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o pour_v out_o his_o love_n into_o we_o but_o also_o refer_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o as_o to_o the_o final_a cause_n and_o verilye_o christ_n have_v no_o need_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v belove_v but_o only_o that_o in_o redeem_n of_o we_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o fatherly_a mercy_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o lord_n make_v mention_v here_o of_o his_o fatherlye_o goodness_n for_o he_o go_v about_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o phariseis_n which_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o blind_a man_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o a_o god_n but_o a_o sinner_n that_o therewithal_o they_o may_v persuade_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o speak_v or_o do_v be_v not_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o to_o i_o again_o c._n because_o the_o hear_n of_o christ_n death_n may_v not_o a_o little_a grieve_v the_o disciple_n and_o may_v also_o greatelye_a assay_v their_o faith_n he_o comfort_v they_o with_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o shall_v straight_o after_o follow_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o dye_v to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o death_n but_o that_o he_o may_v by_o and_o by_o after_o arise_v a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o have_v god_n the_o father_n glorify_v i_o above_o all_o creature_n because_o i_o be_o obedient_a to_o he_o 2.8_o phil._n 2.8_o to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o because_o i_o have_v descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_o make_v the_o most_o abiecte_a and_o contemptible_a perform_v therefore_o i_o will_v ascend_v above_o all_o the_o heaven_n and_o god_n shall_v geve_v unto_o i_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o all_o name_n and_o shall_v great_o honour_v i_o m._n and_o whereas_o he_o arise_v not_o straight_o after_o he_o have_v suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o tarry_v untyll_o the_o third_o day_n it_o be_v do_v to_o take_v away_o the_o suspicion_n of_o a_o feign_a death_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o unwonted_a and_o miraculous_a resurrection_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o his_o death_n be_v not_o after_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o man_n but_o dispensatorye_n because_o life_n shall_v present_o follow_v death_n c._n and_o it_o become_v we_o at_o this_o day_n so_o to_o think_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n christ_n resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o therewithal_o we_o remember_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v life_n because_o he_o have_v fight_v with_o death_n have_v mighty_o overcome_v the_o same_o and_o make_v a_o noble_a triumph_n a._n for_o by_o death_n he_o have_v destroy_v he_o which_o have_v power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o devil_n i5_n heb._n 2_o i5_n and_o have_v make_v they_o free_v which_o all_o their_o life_n time_n be_v mere_a bondslave_n 18._o no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o but_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o have_v power_n to_o to_o take_v it_o again_o this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receyve_v of_o my_o father_n no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o m._n if_o so_o be_v to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n signifi_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o dye_v even_o as_o to_o take_v away_o the_o life_n be_v to_o kill_v how_o then_o say_v he_o that_o no_o man_n take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o he_o do_v not_o the_o jew_n kill_v he_o yes_o verilye_o if_o then_o they_o kill_v he_o they_o also_o take_v away_o his_o life_n from_o he_o in_o deed_n they_o take_v it_o away_o but_o they_o do_v not_o extorte_n it_o from_o he_o by_o violence_n and_o against_o his_o will_n for_o they_o can_v not_o have_v take_v the_o same_o from_o he_o except_o he_o will_v wyllinglye_o have_v dye_v hereupon_o he_o add_v this_o say_v but_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o he_o will_v kill_v himself_o a._n as_o the_o wicked_a jew_n object_v unto_o he_o m._n but_o because_o the_o lay_n down_o of_o his_o life_n be_v not_o in_o any_o man_n power_n but_o he_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n lay_v down_o the_o same_o c._n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v that_o man_n have_v power_n in_o themselves_o to_o kill_v unless_o he_o suffer_v they_o but_o also_o exempt_v himself_o from_o all_o force_n of_o necessity_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o we_o who_o of_o necessity_n be_v subject_a to_o death_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n christ_n also_o himself_o be_v bear_v a_o mortal_a man_n but_o this_o be_v voluntarye_a submission_n and_o not_o violent_a constraint_n this_o therefore_o pertain_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o disciple_n lest_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o short_o after_o to_o be_v carry_v unto_o death_n they_o may_v be_v discourage_v as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v oppress_v of_o his_o enemy_n but_o may_v know_v that_o the_o same_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v death_n to_o redeem_v the_o flock_n and_o this_o be_v always_o a_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o therefore_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v a_o voluntarye_a sacrifice_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o man_n many_o become_v sinner_n i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o r._n this_o be_v even_o the_o same_o which_o he_o say_v before_o name_o that_o he_o therefore_o suffer_v because_o so_o it_o
therefore_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v unto_o deaf_a man_n for_o a_o time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o do_v not_o spend_v his_o wind_n in_o vain_a but_o that_o he_o sow_v the_o seed_n in_o the_o ground_n which_o be_v afterward_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o as_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o his_o word_n and_o of_o the_o fulfillinge_v of_o thing_n even_o so_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v forth_o faith_n in_o us._n a._n moreover_o he_o speak_v here_o almost_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o treason_n of_o judas_n now_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o it_o be_v come_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o he_o 13.16_o john_n 13.16_o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n follow_v but_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v remember_v that_o i_o tell_v you_o by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v a_o plain_a argument_n of_o his_o divinitye_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o disciple_n faith_n 38_o hereafter_o will_v i_o not_o taulke_v many_o word_n with_o you_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v &_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o bu_n now_o in_o plain_a word_n he_o show_v that_o be_v will_v die_v for_o the_o salvation_n and_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o show_v that_o death_n and_o bond_n wait_v for_o he_o say_v now_o shall_v my_o first_o ministry_n cease_v by_o which_o i_o abase_v myself_o even_o to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o the_o hour_n of_o my_o passion_n be_v at_o hand_n by_o which_o sai_v he_o mind_v to_o make_v his_o disciple_n more_o attentive_a and_o more_o deep_o to_o print_v his_o doctrine_n in_o their_o mind_n for_o fullness_n often_o time_n bring_v loathsomenesse_n and_o that_o be_v more_o earnest_o desire_v which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v get_v and_o that_o which_o tarry_v but_o a_o while_o be_v most_o set_v by_o therefore_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v short_o go_v from_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o desierouse_a to_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n and_o although_o christ_n shall_v teach_v we_o all_o our_o life_n time_n without_o cease_v yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o sentence_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o our_o use_n also_o because_o see_v the_o race_n of_o our_o life_n be_v but_o short_a we_o must_v use_v occasion_n a._n lest_o we_o be_v blind_v in_o our_o own_o wickedness_n do_v contemn_v his_o voice_n which_o talk_v with_o we_o at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n c._n he_o may_v simple_o have_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v and_o that_o now_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o he_o speak_v by_o circomstance_n to_o confirm_v their_o mind_n least_o they_o be_v terrify_v with_o so_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a a_o kind_n of_o death_n shall_v fall_v away_o for_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v crucefy_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o seek_v life_n among_o the_o dead_a first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v that_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o sathan_n then_o he_o add_v that_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o not_o be_v cause_n he_o be_v thereunto_o constrain_v but_o that_o he_o may_v obey_v his_o father_n a._n but_o why_o the_o devil_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o twelu_v chapter_n go_v before_o c._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n be_v comprehend_v all_o mankind_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o redeemer_n which_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o this_o horrible_a servitude_n but_o see_v this_o poonishment_n come_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n even_o as_o daily_o it_o encreass_v more_o and_o more_o through_o new_a sin_n let_v we_o learn_v both_o to_o hate_v ourselves_o and_o our_o sin_n also_o for_o we_o be_v so_o captive_a under_o the_o rule_n of_o satan_n that_o notwithstanding_o this_o servitude_n which_o be_v voluntary_a shall_v not_o excuse_v we_o and_o make_v we_o blameless_a we_o must_v also_o note_n that_fw-mi the_o same_o be_v attribute_v here_o to_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v do_v by_o wicked_a man_n for_o it_o be_v no_o unwonted_a thing_n to_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o capitaine_fw-fr which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a army_n of_o the_o capitaine_n satan_n be_v the_o captain_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o the_o murder_a jew_n who_o cause_v they_o to_o commit_v such_o horrible_a wickedness_n c._n therefore_o when_o the_o wicked_a be_v carry_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o satan_n whatsoever_o they_o do_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v his_o work_n m._n also_o this_o place_n teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o look_v for_o of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o which_o the_o devil_n be_v prince_n seconde_o how_o he_o use_v wicked_a man_n as_o his_o soldier_n to_o persecute_v god_n elect_v and_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o b._n satan_n have_v power_n over_o those_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o sin_n for_o he_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n therefore_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v pure_a from_o all_o sin_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o in_o he_o c._n howbeit_o these_o word_n may_v have_v a_o far_a meaning_n for_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o his_o pureness_n alone_o but_o also_o of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o be_v not_o subject_n unto_o death_n for_o it_o be_v mete_v for_o the_o disciple_n to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o obnoxius_fw-la to_o infirmytye_n least_o they_o shall_v think_v to_o base_o of_o his_o power_n but_o in_o this_o general_a sentence_n that_o former_a sentence_n be_v conclude_v that_o in_o subdue_a death_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o satan_n wheruppon_o be_v gather_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o turn_n when_o he_o submit_v himself_o to_o death_n bu_n r._n othersome_a also_o note_n here_o that_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n because_o the_o member_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n can_v not_o obtain_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v for_o they_o purpose_v to_o destroy_v christ_n and_o to_o blot_v out_o his_o name_n for_o ever_o but_o he_o when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v even_o in_o death_n shake_v the_o earth_n and_o wrought_v such_o wonder_n as_o beséeme_v the_o son_n of_o god_n straight_o after_o he_o arise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n where_o he_o reign_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n christ_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n therefore_o the_o power_n of_o sathan_n can_v prevail_v nothing_o against_o the_o lord_n of_o light_n and_o life_n this_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v over_o come_v for_o we_o sin_n death_n and_o sathan_n wherefore_o if_o sathan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o the_o head_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v any_o power_n in_o the_o member_n for_o the_o victory_n life_n and_o innocencye_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v we_o by_o faith_n therefore_o if_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v unto_o thou_o be_v not_o afraid_a consider_v that_o he_o have_v bend_v and_o use_v all_o his_o force_n against_o the_o saviour_n and_o prevail_v not_o but_o be_v overthrow_v himself_o when_o he_o think_v to_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n the_o lord_n jesus_n get_v the_o victory_n for_o thy_o sake_n and_o thou_o shall_v overcome_v in_o he_o r._n but_o if_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n over_o christ_n why_o then_o do_v he_o prevail_v so_o much_o that_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o short_o after_o christ_n die_v and_o that_o the_o most_o shameful_a death_n of_o all_o other_o even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n hear_v now_o the_o cause_n hereof_o in_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n follow_v 31._o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n and_o as_o the_o father_n give_v i_o a_o commandment_n even_o so_o do_v i_o ▪_o rise_v let_v we_o go_v hence_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v therefore_o i_o will_v geve_v place_n to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o delyver_v myself_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n c._n we_o have_v in_o this_o to_o note_n that_o god_n decree_v here_o stand_v in_o the_o high_a place_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o carry_v to_o death_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o satan_n that_o some_o thing_n happen_v to_o he_o beside_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o have_v ordain_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o prepitiatory_a and_o which_o will_v
their_o desire_n which_o exceed_v very_o much_o by_o this_o mean_n which_o he_o prescribe_v he_o promise_v not_o unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o grace_n of_o his_o father_n which_o may_v deliver_v they_o from_o all_o care_n and_o labour_n but_o which_o may_v arm_v they_o with_o invincible_a fortitude_n against_o their_o enemy_n and_o defend_v they_o against_o the_o huge_a heap_n of_o dissension_n which_o they_o shall_v sustain_v therefore_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v according_a too_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v free_a from_o evil_n neither_o must_v we_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o deliver_v we_o by_o and_o by_o into_o bless_a rest_n and_o peace_n but_o we_o must_v content_n ourselves_o with_o a_o sure_a trust_n and_o hope_n of_o victory_n and_o must_v strong_o and_o constant_o resist_v all_o evil_n from_o the_o which_o christ_n pray_v his_o father_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o happy_a deliverance_n 10.13_o 1._o cor._n 10.13_o r._n for_o god_n be_v faithful_a which_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o our_o strength_n 6.13_o mat._n 6.13_o but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o temptation_n will_v make_v away_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o m._n to_o this_o effect_n perteyn_v this_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a c._n to_o be_v short_a god_n take_v not_o those_o that_o be_v his_o out_o of_o the_o world_n because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o idle_a and_o sloughfull_a yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o deliverethe_v they_o from_o evil_a least_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v for_o he_o will_v have_v they_o fyghte_n but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o wound_v to_o death_n r._n therefore_o by_o this_o word_n evil_a understande_v not_o affliction_n cross_n and_o death_n but_o sin_n impiety_n infidelity_n and_o fall_v a_o way_n from_o the_o gospel_n the_o which_o evil_a be_v take_v away_o other_o evil_n will_v turn_v to_o good_a for_o in_o that_o christ_n have_v take_v a_o way_n sin_n the_o evil_n and_o wage_n of_o sin_n remain_v he_o declare_v his_o glory_n and_o power_n by_o which_o of_o evil_a he_o make_v good_a for_o death_n because_o it_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v the_o high_a of_o sin_n be_v evil_n but_o sin_n be_v take_v a_o way_n by_o faith_n they_o be_v make_v good_a and_o they_o must_v abide_v with_o the_o godly_a in_o this_o world_n that_o they_o may_v be_v prove_v and_o purge_v as_o it_o be_v through_o fire_n 17._o sanctify_v they_o through_o thy_o truth_n thy_o word_n be_v the_o truth_n m._n before_o he_o say_v i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o thy_o word_n now_o he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v sanctify_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n at_o their_o enter_v into_o the_o apostleship_n whereby_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n may_v be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v supply_v his_o room_n and_o be_v confirm_v therefore_o this_o sanctification_n comprehend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o that_o it_o may_v also_o be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o béeleeving_a though_o not_o apostle_n the_o which_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v when_o god_n renu_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spyrite_n and_o confyrm_v the_o grace_n of_o renovation_n in_o we_o and_o continue_v the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o he_o prayethe_v that_o the_o father_n will_v sanctify_v his_o disciple_n that_o be_v too_o say_v that_o he_o will_v whole_o addiecte_v they_o unto_o he_o and_o take_v they_o too_o himself_o as_o a_o holy_a and_o principal_a charge_n secondlye_o he_o shewethe_v the_o manner_n how_o he_o will_v have_v they_o sanctify_v and_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o there_o be_v sertayne_v braynesicke_a menne_n which_o babble_n and_o prate_n much_o of_o sanctification_n but_o do_v omit_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o consecrate_v we_o too_o himself_o moreover_o because_o other_o no_o less_o mad_a than_o they_o do_v tryffle_n and_o toy_n with_o that_o truth_n of_o the_o which_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v here_o and_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n neglect_v the_o word_n christ_n plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v than_o 〈…〉_o which_o do_v 〈…〉_o be_v it_o 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈…〉_o be_v s●●●led_v with_o ●●●pe_v and_o work_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o law_n say_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v mutable_a and_o h●dde●_n from_o our_o eye_n therefore_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o conscience_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o word_n be_v this_o christ_n die_v for_o we_o 〈…〉_o for_o my_o ●●eepe_n ●ake_v you_o 〈…〉_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o i●_n give_v for_o your_o drink_n ye●_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o such_o like_a 26_o 1_o pet._n ●_o 18_o joh_n ●_o 1●.15_n mat._n 26_o 26_o ephe._n ●_o 26_o in_o this_o sense_n paul_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v cleanse_v by_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n r._n also_o christ_n say_v now_o be_v you_o all_o clean_a through_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o and_o peter_n say_v 15.3_o joh._n 15.3_o purify_n your_o soul_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n by_o the_o spirit_n c._n it_o be_v god_n only_o which_o sanctifi_v 1.22_o 1._o pet._n 1.22_o a._n i_o be_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o which_o sanctify_v you_o but_o because_o his_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o salvation_n to_o everye_o one_o that_o believe_v whosoever_o forsake_v that_o mean_a 1.19_o rom._n 1.19_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v more_o filth_n every_o day_n than_o other_o truth_n here_o by_o excellency_n be_v take_v for_o the_o light_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n in_o the_o which_o god_n have_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o like_o 〈…〉_o 18._o as_o thou_o dyddest_n send_v i_o into_o the_o world_n even_o so_o also_o have_v i_o send_v they_o into_o the_o world_n c_o by_o another_o argument_n he_o confirm_v his_o prayer_n namely_o because_o he_o and_o the_o apostel_n call_v be_v all_o one_o now_o say_v he_o i_o commit_v unto_o they_o that_o office_n which_o hitherto_o i_o myself_o have_v sustain_v and_o bear_v at_o thy_o commandment_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o be_v instruct_v and_o arm_v with_o the_o power_n of_o thy_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a too_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o burden_n m._n and_o he_o use_v here_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phras_n one_o tense_n for_o another_o as_o i_o have_v send_v for_o i_o will_v send_v for_o he_o send_v they_o not_o untyll_o after_o his_o resurrection_n 16.15_o mar._n 16.15_o also_o here_o we_o have_v to_o note_n who_o they_o be_v which_o may_v hope_v that_o this_o heavenly_a santification_n shall_v be_v give_v they_o to_o discharge_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v there_o be_v some_o which_o run_v of_o themselves_o uncalled_a and_o there_o be_v other_o some_o which_o be_v only_o teach_v and_o call_v of_o man_n run_v without_o the_o divine_a disposition_n and_o call_n of_o god_n neither_o of_o they_o have_v to_o hope_v for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o they_o who_o christ_n send_v into_o the_o world_n which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o truth_n such_o be_v the_o apostle_n who_o christ_n intend_v to_o send_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n even_o as_o he_o himself_o be_v send_v forth_o of_o the_o father_n also_o we_o must_v weigh_v how_o great_o we_o ought_v to_o esteem_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n himself_o they_o be_v so_o send_v into_o the_o world_n even_o as_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n therefore_o he_o which_o hear_v they_o hear_v god_n himself_o and_o he_o which_o despise_v they_o despise_v god_n 10.16_o luk._n 10.16_o final_o let_v we_o consider_v to_o what_o end_n the_o apostle_n be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n r._n they_o be_v send_v of_o christ_n even_o as_o christ_n be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n now_o christ_n be_v send_v to_o show_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o gospel_n he_o be_v also_o send_v to_o be_v a_o lyvely_a example_n and_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n m._n not_o to_o rule_v in_o the_o world_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n but_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sevaunte_n o●_n others_z when_o as_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o r._n even_o so_o also_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v not_o to_o teach_v man_n invention_n but_o the_o
and_o of_o his_o pontifical_a majesty_n in_o that_o christ_n answer_v not_o servile_o fearful_o and_o abject_o say_v may_v it_o please_v your_o holiness_n most_o reverend_n father_n to_o ask_v those_o which_o have_v hear_v i_o but_o with_o a_o certain_a reprehension_n and_o hold_v speech_n he_o say_v why_o ask_v thou_o i_o ask_v they_o which_o hear_v i_o what_o i_o say_v unto_o they_o therefore_o one_o of_o they_o think_v to_o do_v the_o high_a priest_n a_o pleasure_n as_o a_o maynteyner_n of_o his_o pontifical_a honour_n give_v the_o innocent_a a_o blow_n on_o the_o face_n be_v captive_a and_o bind_v and_o withal_o taunt_v he_o say_v answer_v thou_o the_o high_a priest_n so_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v be_v this_o thy_o reverence_n which_o thou_o geve_v unto_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n be_v thou_o so_o rash_a that_o thou_o answer_v the_o high_a priest_n no_o better_o than_o thou_o will_v speak_v to_o a_o private_a person_n and_o one_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n c._o therefore_o this_o be_v add_v first_o of_o all_o that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o great_a the_o madness_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v what_o tyrannical_a government_n and_o also_o what_o discipline_n be_v amongst_o those_o high_a priest_n m._n there_o be_v a_o proverb_n such_o a_o master_n such_o a_o man_n a_o man_n may_v know_v what_o this_o high_a priest_n be_v by_o his_o servant_n it_o be_v too_o much_o inhumanity_n to_o check_v taunt_n and_o beat_v a_o prisoner_n before_o a_o judge_n c._n they_o sit_v as_o judge_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v more_o fierce_a and_o cruel_a than_o brute_n beast_n this_o be_v a_o session_n in_o the_o which_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v great_a gravity_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o a_o servant_n be_v so_o bold_a and_o presumptuous_a that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o plea_n even_o before_o the_o judge_n he_o strike_v the_o prisoner_n which_o be_v find_v guilty_a in_o nothing_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o so_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v condemn_v in_o so_o barbarous_a a_o assembly_n m._n it_o become_v the_o high_a priest_n to_o have_v reprehend_v and_o correct_v this_o rashness_n of_o the_o servant_n but_o because_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o maynteyner_n of_o his_o majesty_n against_o the_o lord_n he_o allow_v this_o wicked_a act_n by_o his_o silence_n this_o flatter_a parasite_n represent_v all_o those_o which_o allow_v and_o confirm_v the_o disdain_n arrogancy_n and_o iniquity_n of_o false_a bishop_n and_o do_v judge_v it_o great_a contumely_n and_o dishonour_n to_o the_o bishoply_n dignity_n if_o all_o thing_n concern_v the_o same_o be_v not_o servile_o with_o submission_n allow_v and_o extol_v even_o to_o heaven_n they_o can_v not_o see_v their_o iniquity_n but_o can_v with_o great_a fervency_n maintain_v their_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o authority_n 23._o jesus_n answer_v he_o if_o i_o have_v evil_o speak_v bear_v witness_n of_o the_o evil_a but_o if_o i_o have_v well_o speak_v why_o smyte_v thou_o i_o m._n first_o we_o must_v note_v the_o patience_n of_o christ_n he_o may_v have_v revenge_v himself_o of_o that_o lewd_a servant_n of_o the_o wicked_a high_a priest_n but_o he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o suffer_v contumely_n then_o to_o revenge_v himself_o 2.23_o 1._o pet._n 2.23_o the_o which_o be_v set_v down_o here_o for_o our_o example_n 9.56_o luk._n 9.56_o a._n for_o beside_o this_o that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v not_o to_o destroy_v man_n soul_n but_o to_o save_v they_o he_o be_v also_o ready_a to_o suffer_v death_n 23.34_o luk._n 23.34_o that_o we_o be_v enemy_n he_o may_v reconcile_v we_o unto_o his_o father_n whereupon_o afterward_o he_o pray_v for_o those_o which_o crucify_v he_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o wish_v vengeance_n to_o be_v take_v of_o they_o m._n therefore_o he_o suffer_v contumely_n and_o take_v not_o vengeance_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o hold_v not_o his_o peace_n at_o his_o iniquity_n neither_o do_v he_o forsake_v his_o innocence_n but_o maintain_v the_o same_o c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o i_o have_v offend_v accuse_v i_o that_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v hear_v i_o may_v be_v punish_v according_a to_o the_o offence_n for_o the_o foresay_a violence_n be_v no_o lawful_a deal_n but_o another_o manner_n of_o order_n and_o modesty_n belong_v to_o judgement_n christ_n therefore_o complain_v of_o great_a injury_n do_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o offend_v and_o that_o if_o he_o have_v offend_v yet_o they_o shall_v have_v deal_v according_a to_o law_n and_o equity_n and_o not_o by_o violence_n but_o christ_n here_o seem_v not_o to_o observe_v that_o 5.39_o mat._n 5.39_o which_o he_o command_v he_o to_o do_v in_o another_o place_n for_o he_o do_v not_o turn_v his_o right_a ear_n when_o his_o left_a check_n be_v buffet_v answer_n r._n if_o thou_o well_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o expound_v the_o law_n it_o shall_v manifest_o appear_v that_o christ_n have_v fulfil_v his_o own_o doctrine_n for_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o place_n if_o so_o be_v any_o man_n do_v unto_o thou_o any_o injury_n contumely_n or_o harm_n thou_o must_v be_v so_o far_o from_o requite_v one_o injury_n for_o another_o that_o thou_o must_v rather_o be_v prepare_v to_o suffer_v great_a injury_n compare_v now_o the_o deed_n of_o christ_n with_o this_o say_n do_v he_o revenge_v himself_o peter_n say_v he_o do_v not_o do_v he_o geve_v evil_a word_n again_o thou_o hear_v a_o defence_n but_o no_o accusation_n thou_o hear_v a_o admonition_n but_o no_o rail_n for_o he_o say_v if_o i_o have_v well_o do_v why_o smite_v thou_o i_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o strike_v not_o again_o i_o do_v not_o revenge_v myself_o but_o i_o warn_v thou_o repent_v lest_o worse_o happen_v unto_o thou_o from_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n c._n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o always_o require_v in_o christian_a patience_n that_o he_o which_o be_v hurt_v shall_v both_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o suffer_v injury_n but_o this_o be_v require_v that_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o patient_o without_o desire_n of_o revenge_n and_o that_o he_o rather_o seek_v to_o overcome_v evil_a by_o do_v good_a the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n do_v too_o much_o carry_v the_o wicked_a to_o do_v harm_n yea_o though_o no_o man_n provoke_v they_o m._n moreover_o that_o which_o be_v do_v unto_o paul_n by_o annas_n the_o high_a priest_n 12.21_o rom._n 12.21_o differ_v little_a from_o this_o which_o be_v do_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o presumptuous_a servant_n of_o the_o wicked_a high_a priest_n 24._o now_o annas_n have_v send_v he_o bind_v unto_o caiphas_n the_o high_a priest_n r._n this_o sentence_n must_v be_v include_v by_o a_o parenthesis_n c._n for_o because_o the_o evangelist_n have_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v lead_v to_o the_o house_n of_o annas_n &_o have_v so_o prosecute_v his_o narration_n as_o though_o the_o counsel_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v be_v there_o he_o now_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n a_o this_o also_o seem_v to_o be_v add_v to_o exaggerate_v the_o injury_n do_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o high_a priest_n servant_n for_o it_o be_v very_o unmeete_a that_o a_o prisoner_n bind_v and_o uncondemned_a shall_v be_v foul_o beat_v before_o a_o judge_n stand_v at_o the_o bar_n plead_v and_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o text_n between_o this_o and_o the_o .28_o verse_n read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .26_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n 28._o then_o lead_v they_o jesus_n from_o caiphas_n into_o the_o haule_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v in_o the_o morning_n and_o they_o themselves_o go_v not_o into_o the_o jugement_n haule_fw-mi least_o they_o shall_v be_v defile_v but_o that_o they_o may_v eat_v the_o passover_o r._n this_o be_v a_o preparation_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o oration_n or_o communication_n by_o which_o christ_n be_v reprove_v of_o sedition_n m._n for_o the_o evangelist_n pass_v to_o the_o declaration_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v before_o pilate_n of_o the_o roman_a lieutenant_n c._n that_o examination_n of_o the_o which_o saint_n john_n speak_v be_v very_o early_o before_o the_o break_n of_o the_o day_n yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o have_v in_o every_o place_n of_o the_o city_n their_o bellows_n to_o set_v the_o people_n on_o fire_n the_o burn_a madness_n of_o the_o people_n which_o with_o one_o consent_n require_v to_o have_v christ_n deliver_v up_o to_o death_n flame_v so_o sudden_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v the_o examine_n of_o christ_n not_o that_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o geve_v
❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n gather_v out_o of_o all_o the_o singular_a and_o approve_a divines_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o church_n by_o augustine_n marlorate_v and_o translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a by_o thomas_n timme_n minister_n see_v and_o allow_v according_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n marsh_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1575._o ¶_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lord_n thomas_n earl_n of_o sussex_n viscount_n fitzwalter_n lord_n of_o egremont_n and_o of_o burnell_n one_o of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n honourable_a privy_a counsel_n and_o lord_n high_a chamberlain_n of_o her_o house_n of_o the_o noble_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n knight_n justice_n of_o oyer_n of_o the_o forest_n park_n warrayne_n and_o chase_n from_o trent_n southwarde_a and_o captain_n of_o the_o gentleman_n pensioner_n and_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a lady_n his_o wife_n increase_n of_o honour_n and_o true_a knowledge_n in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o great_a profit_n which_o the_o christian_a mind_n be_v to_o receyve_v by_o read_v this_o book_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o translate_v it_o out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o english_a tongue_n and_o the_o recommend_v thereof_o the_o more_o diligent_o to_o have_v it_o read_v be_v the_o occasion_n which_o move_v i_o to_o dedicate_v my_o part_n therein_o to_o your_o honour_n for_o what_o english_a man_n be_v there_o which_o will_v not_o think_v it_o a_o book_n most_o worthy_a the_o read_n which_o he_o see_v warrant_v by_o your_o name_n the_o honourable_a and_o general_a report_n whereof_o hartn_v i_o to_o present_v it_o unto_o you_o wherein_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o deep_a and_o divine_a evangelist_n saint_n john_n the_o marrow_n of_o all_o commentary_n upon_o he_o under_o the_o name_n of_o marlorates_n collection_n last_o and_o least_o my_o faithful_a travel_n to_o turn_v they_o both_o to_o the_o use_n of_o my_o country_n the_o thing_n i_o know_v your_o honour_n will_v like_v well_o because_o as_o i_o hear_v you_o can_v skilful_o judge_v so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o have_v make_v your_o choice_n what_o to_o read_v which_o so_o much_o brute_v the_o credit_n of_o your_o ability_n find_v out_o by_o effect_n as_o for_o my_o labour_n may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n to_o like_v it_o as_o come_v from_o one_o which_o catch_v with_o the_o commendation_n of_o your_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n general_o noyze_v can_v not_o but_o offer_v myself_o to_o you_o as_o the_o wonder_a queen_n of_o saba_n can_v not_o rest_v till_o she_o have_v see_v salomon_n person_n of_o who_o wisdom_n she_o have_v hard_o so_o much_o and_o withal_o i_o think_v it_o good_a in_o offer_v my_o labour_n to_o your_o honour_n to_o join_v you_o both_o together_o think_v with_o myself_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o such_o skill_n and_o judgement_n be_v in_o so_o honourable_a a_o man_n must_v needs_o by_o society_n of_o match_n work_n like_o effect_n in_o so_o honourable_a a_o mate_n wherefore_o not_o to_o trouble_v your_o honour_n with_o long_a speech_n i_o take_v my_o leave_n recommend_v my_o poor_a pain_n to_o your_o honour_n protection_n the_o recompense_n whereof_o you_o shall_v receive_v in_o your_o read_n of_o the_o book_n who_o fruit_n will_v bring_v by_o god_n grace_n health_n to_o your_o soul_n and_o continuance_n of_o your_o honor._n your_o honour_n most_o humble_a thomas_n timme_n ❧_o a_o catholic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n after_o s._n john_n the_o argument_n although_o the_o word_n of_o god_n depend_v or_o hang_v not_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o 4._o 1._o john_n 4._o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o which_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n do_v keep_v their_o authority_n in_o the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n the_o testimony_n which_o they_o bring_v concern_v the_o truth_n may_v more_o firm_o abide_v with_o the_o faithful_a but_o true_o this_o gospel_n which_o john_n bring_v be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o testimony_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o life_n of_o man_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o resurrection_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o good_a shephearde_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o to_o be_v short_a the_o only_a saviour_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v convenient_a therefore_o that_o we_o know_v who_o this_o be_v which_o so_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o which_o be_v conversaunt_a among_o man_n have_v the_o show_n of_o a_o servant_n 2._o philip._n 2._o be_v in_o the_o similytude_n of_o man_n and_o find_v in_o his_o apparel_n as_o a_o man_n be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o we_o be_v and_o yet_o without_o sin_n this_o one_o witness_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v of_o we_o even_o as_o well_o as_o a_o thousand_o 4._o heb._n 4._o because_o he_o be_v one_o that_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o edify_a of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o common_a profit_n of_o all_o man_n not_o by_o the_o common_a fame_n and_o report_n of_o other_o man_n but_o by_o that_o which_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o infallible_a namely_o by_o that_o which_o he_o hear_v and_o see_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o himself_o speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o history_n say_v 19_o john_n 19_o he_o which_o see_v bare_a witness_n and_o his_o witness_n be_v true_a and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o speak_v truth_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v which_o we_o have_v see_v which_o we_o have_v look_v upon_o and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n we_o show_v unto_o you_o for_o this_o writer_n of_o the_o sacred_a history_n 1._o 1._o john_n 1._o or_o gospel_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n bear_v in_o galilee_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebede_n and_o solomon_n as_o many_o think_v of_o who_o call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n s._n matthew_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n make_v mention_v apt_o therefore_o he_o call_v this_o history_n the_o gospel_n for_o he_o do_v more_o large_o and_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n than_o the_o other_o evangelist_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v forseen_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n call_v this_o our_o evangelist_n and_o his_o brother_n also_o the_o son_n of_o thunder_n or_o as_o mark_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d furthermore_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n be_v very_o large_a inset_a forth_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o our_o evangelist_n short_o touch_v those_o thing_n stand_v more_o upon_o that_o doctrine_n by_o the_o which_o both_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n &_o resurrection_n be_v explicate_v and_o to_o be_v short_a all_o of_o they_o seek_v to_o set_v forth_o christ_n the_o first_o three_o namely_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n do_v set_v before_o we_o if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o body_n but_o john_n the_o soul_n insomuch_o that_o this_o gospel_n may_v true_o be_v call_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n to_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o other_o three_o for_o who_o soever_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n power_n the_o which_o be_v here_o cunning_o express_v he_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v read_v with_o profit_n that_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v write_v as_o concern_v the_o redeemer_n neither_o be_v it_o do_v without_o the_o singular_a counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o gospel_n write_v by_o matthew_n mark_v and_o luke_n shall_v be_v publish_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o world_n before_o that_o which_o be_v write_v by_o john_n for_o the_o weak_a ear_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o great_a thunder_n therefore_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n shall_v first_o of_o all_o be_v set_v forth_o his_o nativity_n describe_v and_o how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o david_n by_o what_o document_n he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n how_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o third_o
the_o blindness_n of_o man_n be_v m._n they_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n a_o choose_a people_n out_o of_o all_o nation_n to_o this_o people_n he_o come_v by_o incarnation_n who_o other_o wise_a by_o his_o devinitie_n be_v and_o have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v never_o from_o the_o father_n to_o this_o people_n he_o be_v promise_v a_o messiah_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o david_n and_o be_v make_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o circumcision_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 15_o rom._n 15_o to_o confirm_v the_o promise_n make_v unto_o the_o father_n r._n and_o he_o be_v not_o only_o reject_v of_o they_o but_o also_o crucify_a and_o put_v to_o death_n the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v less_o among_o none_o than_o among_o the_o wise_a and_o mighty_a man_n of_o this_o world_n for_o christ_n be_v to_o the_o mighty_a and_o wise_a of_o this_o world_n foolishness_n and_o a_o stone_n to_o stumble_v at_o m._n but_o why_o do_v the_o evangelist_n urge_v this_o same_o so_o often_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o receyve_v for_o say_v he_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v he_o not_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o sure_o he_o do_v it_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v thou_o do_v preach_v unto_o we_o a_o great_a light_n which_o be_v come_v already_o into_o the_o world_n but_o why_o come_v he_o so_o late_o why_o do_v he_o neglect_v the_o first_o world_n he_o answer_v he_o come_v not_o to_o late_o but_o always_o shine_v he_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n but_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o and_o he_o also_o to_o who_o by_o great_a benefit_n he_o have_v join_v himself_o to_o who_o he_o come_v with_o singular_a grace_n and_o favour_n to_o who_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v best_o know_v receyve_v he_o not_o so_o thick_a truelye_o and_o palpable_a be_v the_o darkness_n everye_o where_n of_o this_o world_n he_o do_v also_o take_v away_o that_o stumble_a block_n by_o the_o which_o many_o be_v move_v for_o that_o he_o wrap_v the_o jew_n in_o the_o same_o darkness_n that_o the_o world_n be_v in_o so_o say_v paul_n blindness_n fall_v upon_o israel_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n pertain_v that_o complaint_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o esay_n 11_o rom._n 11_o say_v the_o ox_n know_v his_o owner_n and_o the_o ass_n his_o master_n crib_n but_o israel_n have_v not_o know_v i_o 1_o esay_n 1_o for_o although_o he_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o peculiar_a lord_n of_o israel_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v his_o dear_a shéepefolde_a this_o place_n also_o serve_v to_o make_v we_o fear_v that_o we_o be_v not_o careless_a of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v reveal_v and_o preach_v for_o we_o be_v not_o therefore_o just_a because_o we_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o because_o christ_n come_v but_o because_o we_o believe_v and_o work_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o faith_n a._n the_o jew_n have_v no_o regard_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o they_o stumble_v and_o fall_v at_o the_o stone_n of_o offence_n and_o be_v reject_v for_o their_o unbeléefe_n m._n furthermore_o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v strange_a to_o any_o man_n if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n be_v not_o receyve_v of_o this_o world_n see_v that_o light_n be_v receyve_v neither_o afore_o nor_o after_o the_o incarnation_n neither_o of_o the_o gentile_n 3.4_o 1._o ihon._n 3.4_o nor_o of_o the_o jew_n the_o world_n receyve_v that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o 12._o but_o as_o many_o as_o receyve_v he_o to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n but_o as_o many_o as_o receyve_v he_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v before_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understode_v that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o jew_n receyve_v christ_n for_o many_o receyve_v he_o but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o receyve_v by_o a_o general_a consent_n even_o as_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v the_o gospel_n come_v into_o england_n and_o england_n receyve_v it_o not_o how_o can_v england_n be_v say_v not_o to_o receyve_v the_o gospel_n see_v there_o be_v so_o many_o christian_a englishmen_n that_o receyve_v the_o same_o surelye_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v not_o to_o receyve_v it_o because_o it_o do_v not_o receyve_v it_o with_o a_o &_o general_n come_v consent_n all_o man_n agree_v to_o the_o same_o r._n to_o receyve_v christ_n as_o john_n interprete_v the_o same_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o geve_v himself_o to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o his_o redemption_n 1_o 1._o cor._n 1_o sin_n shall_v not_o remain_v death_n shall_v vanish_v away_o and_o hell_n fire_n shall_v be_v quensh_v for_o man_n shall_v be_v make_v such_o as_o christ_n himself_o be_v if_o they_o geve_v and_o bequeath_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o he_o according_a to_o that_o which_o follow_v to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n lest_o this_o let_v shall_v hinder_v or_o stay_v any_o man_n that_z the_o jew_n contemn_v christ_n the_o evangelist_n lift_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o believe_v in_o he_o above_o the_o heaven_n for_o he_o say_v that_o this_o glory_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n must_v be_v obtain_v by_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o universality_n as_o many_o be_v contain_v a_o secret_a comparison_n for_o the_o jew_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o blind_a vain_a glory_n as_o though_o they_o alone_o have_v god_n tie_v unto_o they_o the_o evangelist_n therefore_o pronounce_v that_o the_o lot_n be_v alter_v because_o the_o jew_n be_v forsake_v the_o gentile_n be_v choose_v in_o their_o steed_n for_o it_o be_v asmuch_o as_o if_o the_o right_n of_o adoption_n shall_v be_v transport_v to_o stranger_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o paul_n say_v the_o destruction_n of_o one_o people_n be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 11_o rom._n 11_o because_o the_o gospel_n be_v expulse_v as_o it_o be_v of_o they_o begin_v now_o to_o be_v spread_v even_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n chr._n therefore_o whether_o they_o be_v bond_n or_o free_a whether_o they_o be_v barbarous_a or_o scythian_n wise_a or_o foolish_a man_n or_o woman_n child_n or_o old_a man_n all_o be_v worthy_a of_o one_o honour_n of_o the_o which_o it_o be_v say_v he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god._n c._n the_o papist_n by_o this_o place_n gather_v that_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n either_o to_o choose_v or_o to_o reject_v this_o grace_n but_o the_o text_n itself_o do_v plainelye_o overthrow_v this_o false_a collection_n for_o straight_o after_o the_o evangelist_n add_v that_o they_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o special_o by_o the_o next_o verse_n follow_v this_o make_v come_v not_o by_o the_o will_n of_o flesh_n but_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o regeneration_n wherefore_o if_o faith_n do_v regenerate_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o if_o god_n from_o heaven_n do_v inspire_v the_o same_o into_o we_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n be_v not_o only_o offer_v to_o we_o of_o christ_n in_o power_n but_o also_o even_o in_o the_o very_a act_n moreover_o in_o this_o christ_n have_v woonderfullye_o set_v forth_o his_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v give_v this_o honour_n to_o unclean_a and_o profane_a man_n yea_o to_o such_o as_o lie_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n that_o they_o shall_v now_o sudden_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n notwithout_n cause_n therefore_o do_v the_o evangelist_n extol_v the_o greatness_n of_o this_o benefit_n 2_o ephe._n 2_o even_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n c._n he_o do_v briefelye_o note_v the_o manner_n of_o receyve_v of_o christ_n namely_o when_o man_n believe_v in_o he_o therefore_o we_o be_v by_o faith_n ingraff_v into_o christ_n do_v attain_v the_o right_n of_o adoption_n that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o certain_o see_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n this_o honour_n pertain_v nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o we_o be_v it_o not_o that_o we_o be_v his_o member_n m._n to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o show_v even_o now_o be_v to_o receyve_v he_o as_o the_o son_n of_o
from_o our_o mother_n womb_n but_o our_o carnal_a nature_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v natural_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o celestial_a life_n do_v abide_v under_o the_o bondage_n of_o death_n this_o word_n flesh_n do_v signify_v the_o whole_a man_n for_o flesh_n in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v the_o body_n but_o also_o the_o soul_n and_o every_o part_n of_o man_n for_o the_o papist_n do_v very_o fondlye_a restrain_v it_o to_o that_o part_n which_o they_o call_v sensual_a because_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o argument_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v very_o vain_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o second_o birth_n be_v needful_a because_o some_o part_n of_o we_o be_v corrupt_v and_o defile_v but_o if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v that_o there_o remain_v yet_o some_o part_n of_o god_n gift_n in_o this_o our_o degenerate_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o every_o part_n paruert_v and_o pollute_v we_o may_v easy_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n and_o say_v that_o those_o gift_n which_o god_n leave_v in_o we_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o be_v high_o to_o be_v esteem_v and_o praise_v but_o see_v the_o contagion_n and_o corruption_n of_o sin_n have_v difund_v and_o spread_v itself_o throughout_o every_o part_n we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o we_o pure_a and_o free_a from_o all_o pollusion_n wherefore_o as_o we_o have_v natural_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whereas_o there_o be_v ingraff_v in_o we_o a_o certain_a discretion_n to_o judge_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a whereas_o we_o have_v wit_n and_o reason_n to_o defend_v this_o present_a life_n and_o whereas_o we_o excel_v the_o brute_n beast_n in_o so_o many_o notable_a gift_n defile_v man_n nature_n defile_v these_o thing_n of_o themselves_o and_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o god_n be_v very_o notable_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v defile_v in_o we_o no_o less_o than_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v unsavery_a through_o stink_a vessel_n be_v make_v thereby_o very_o hurtful_a therefore_o because_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n from_o his_o mother_n birth_n only_o carnal_a he_o must_v be_v transform_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o may_v begin_v to_o be_v spiritual_a and_o this_o word_n spirit_n be_v here_o take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n name_o for_o grace_n and_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o grace_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n christ_n teach_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a author_n of_o a_o pure_a and_o reform_a nature_n in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v spiritual_a so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v renew_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o r._n of_o this_o manner_n of_o renew_v the_o apostle_n also_o speak_v say_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n set_v i_o free_a from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o what_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v by_o that_o part_n by_o which_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n that_o do_v god_n by_o send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o similltude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n even_o by_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n 8._o rom._n 8._o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o that_o be_v carnal_a be_v carnal_o mind_v but_o they_o that_o be_v spiritual_a be_v spiritual_a you_o mind_v to_o be_v carnallye_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n because_o that_o the_o fleshly_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v be_v so_o then_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v not_o please_v god_n but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o m._n in_o this_o place_n the_o apostle_n attribute_v first_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o then_o to_o the_o spirit_n certain_a thing_n which_o make_v very_o well_o for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o geve_v to_o the_o flesh_n two_o impossible_a thing_n the_o first_o be_v that_o it_o can_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o second_o that_o it_o can_v not_o please_v god_n hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n as_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o he_o here_o call_v the_o law_n can_v reform_v the_o same_o in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o stand_v altogether_o in_o need_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a power_n by_o which_o we_o be_v regenerate_v then_o he_o geve_v that_o to_o the_o spirit_n which_o fulfil_v the_o justification_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o make_v man_n spiritual_a for_o the_o law_n require_v a_o spirit_n conformable_a regeneration_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o regeneration_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n such_o a_o will_n do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n begette_v the_o spirit_n therefore_o deliver_v from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n and_o quicken_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n c._n but_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a which_o some_o have_v gather_v upon_o this_o place_n of_o christ_n name_o that_o we_o take_v our_o beginning_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n not_o only_o in_o body_n but_o also_o in_o soul_n for_o christ_n say_v nothing_o here_o but_o that_o we_o be_v all_o carnal_a according_a to_o our_o birth_n and_o that_o our_o nature_n do_v savour_n and_o taste_v of_o nothing_o but_o flesh_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o we_o be_v bear_v mortal_a man_n into_o the_o world_n for_o he_o do_v here_o simp_o distinguishe_v between_o the_o natural_a and_o supernatural_a gift_n 7._o marvel_v not_o that_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o m._n this_o sentence_n may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o as_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v b._n as_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v say_v thou_o have_v hear_v good_a cause_n and_o reason_n nicodemus_n why_o i_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n except_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o marvel_v not_o therefore_o m._n but_o if_o we_o refer_v it_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v than_o we_o must_v understande_v that_o the_o lord_n go_v about_o to_o take_v from_o nicodemus_n by_o the_o similitude_n follow_v the_o maze_n which_o nicodemus_n have_v conceyve_v by_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o hear_v c._n the_o which_o we_o must_v not_o so_o take_v as_o though_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v so_o notable_a a_o work_n of_o god_n in_o man_n regeneration_n to_o be_v little_o esteem_v of_o nicodemus_n but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o wonder_v jest_n his_o faith_n shall_v be_v hinder_v for_o many_o reject_v that_o which_o be_v difficile_a and_o hear_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a to_o be_v short_a we_o must_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v frame_v again_o by_o god_n spirit_n and_o be_v make_v new_a man_n although_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o same_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v be_v not_o reveal_v unto_o us._n you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o m._n first_o of_o all_o our_o saviour_n christ_n exclude_v himself_o from_o this_o necessity_n of_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o because_o he_o have_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o flesh_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o so_o bear_v of_o the_o same_o that_o he_o have_v need_n of_o regeneration_n as_o other_o mortal_a man_n have_v and_o have_v which_o be_v conceyve_v and_o bear_v under_o sin_n then_o he_o join_v nicodemꝰ_n a_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o a_o pharisey_n to_o the_o rest_n and_o include_v he_o to_o this_o necessity_n of_o reregeneration_n with_o all_o other_o man_n 7.16_o psal_n 53.4_o rom._n 1.12_o heb._n 7.16_o r._n for_o all_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v become_v unprofitable_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o 1.35_o luke_n 1.35_o but_o christ_n by_o right_n be_v exempt_v from_o this_o corruption_n see_v that_o he_o be_v exempt_v from_o sinner_n whereupon_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o mary_n that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god._n 8._o the_o wind_n blow_v whither_o it_o list_v and_o thou_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o but_o can_v not_o tell_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v so_o be_v every_o
god_n have_v not_o neither_o can_v have_v at_o any_o time_n he_o which_o may_v deliver_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n therefore_o miserablye_o they_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n whereupon_o because_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v already_o judge_v and_o condemn_v no_o less_o than_o he_o which_o have_v receive_v a_o deadly_a wound_n and_o have_v no_o surgeon_n be_v sure_o to_o dye_v or_o than_o he_o which_o be_v adjudge_v to_o dye_v have_v no_o redeemer_n even_o so_o verylye_n christ_n redéeme_v not_o they_o eternallye_o from_o everlasting_a death_n to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o he_o alone_o deliver_v from_o death_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n only_o c._n they_o therefore_o which_o reject_v that_o grace_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o he_o be_v worthy_a to_o find_v he_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o severe_a punisher_n of_o such_o wicked_a and_o foul_a contempt_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a testimony_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o see_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n 1.16_o rom._n 1.16_o to_o all_o that_o believe_v the_o same_o most_o wicked_a be_v their_o ingratitude_n which_o make_v it_o a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n 10.6_o 2._o cor._n 10.6_o both_o these_o do_v the_o apostle_n paul_n very_o well_o express_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n the_o vengeance_n against_o all_o the_o adversaries_n of_o his_o doctrine_n when_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v fulfil_v for_o his_o word_n be_v as_o much_o in_o effect_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o gospel_n principal_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o faithful_a that_o it_o may_v be_v unto_o they_o salvation_n and_o then_o to_o the_o wicked_a that_o it_o may_v be_v unto_o they_o condemnation_n because_o they_o contemn_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n have_v rather_o have_v he_o the_o author_n of_o death_n than_o of_o life_n this_o word_n world_n be_v twice_o repeat_v that_o no_o man_n may_v think_v himself_o exclude_v if_o so_o be_v he_o continue_v in_o faith_n 18._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v but_o he_o that_o beleve_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o beieeve_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o r._n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o preach_a he_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v he_o that_o bleeve_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o a._n as_o it_o be_v also_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 16._o mark_n 16._o he_o which_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o which_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v m._n therefore_o it_o be_v faith_n which_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o deliver_v we_o from_o judgement_n god_n faith_n justifi_v before_o god_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o apostle_n attribute_v justification_n before_o god_n to_o faith_n the_o which_o justification_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o not_o to_o be_v judge_v be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v as_o to_o be_v justify_v to_o be_v absolve_v from_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v account_v for_o just_a he_o say_v not_o whosoever_o beléeve_v in_o he_o be_v without_o sin_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v judge_v but_o he_o say_v whosoever_o beléeve_v in_o he_o be_v not_o judge_v that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n he_o be_v save_v the_o sentence_n of_o deserve_a condemnation_n also_o be_v take_v away_o so_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n 8._o rom_n 8._o c._n and_o whereas_o our_o saviour_n christ_n so_o oftentimes_o and_o so_o diligent_o inculcate_v and_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v out_o of_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v how_o necessary_a the_o certainty_n and_o stabilitye_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o tremble_a and_o oppress_a fear_n of_o conscience_n therefore_o he_o pronounce_v again_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o condemnation_n so_o soon_o as_o we_o believe_v the_o which_o also_o moor_n at_o large_a he_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n follow_v bu_n but_o if_o for_o faith_n sake_n a_o man_n be_v not_o judge_v as_o the_o truth_n itself_o here_o plain_o affirm_v where_o be_v now_o indulgence_n and_o pardon_n where_o be_v the_o ronishie_n satisfaction_n yea_o where_o be_v the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n and_o such_o like_a human_a imagination_n and_o fantasy_n surelye_o they_o be_v vanish_v away_o and_o perish_v for_o ever_o for_o the_o truth_n have_v say_v which_o ought_v never_o to_o be_v forget_v who_o so_o ever_o beléeve_v in_o he_o be_v not_o judge_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o this_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n for_o it_o be_v double_a and_o consist_v of_o contrary_n c._n and_o it_o teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reméedye_n by_o which_o any_o man_n may_v escape_v death_n than_o by_o beléeve_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o death_n for_o all_o those_o life_n faith_n contain_v life_n which_o reject_v that_o life_n offer_v to_o they_o in_o christ_n because_o life_n consist_v only_o in_o faith_n r._n therefore_o as_o nothing_o save_v but_o faith_n so_o nothing_o condemn_v but_o infidelitye_n and_o faith_n therefore_o save_v because_o it_o receyve_v all_o good_a thing_n from_o christ_n and_o work_v also_o all_o goodness_n in_o the_o ●●beléever_n for_o as_o it_o receive_v righteousness_n of_o christ_n even_o so_o it_o bestow_v the_o same_o again_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o our_o brethren_n faith_n work_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o work_n of_o charitye_n but_o unbeléefe_n therefore_o condemn_v because_o it_o reject_v and_o contemn_v all_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o wickedness_n condemn_v unbelief_n condemn_v for_o as_o it_o receyve_v all_o unrighteousness_n from_o satan_n which_o be_v the_o father_n of_o a_o lie_n even_o so_o also_o it_o commit_v all_o evyll_n unbelefe_n work_n of_o unbelefe_n against_o god_n and_o man_n it_o do_v nothing_o that_o be_v just_a it_o always_o sin_v it_o continual_o break_v the_o law_n of_o god_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o most_o just_a sentence_n whosoever_o beleve_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o c._n and_o he_o use_v the_o preterperfect_a tense_n of_o the_o verb_n for_o a_o great_a emphasis_n of_o force_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v thereby_o the_o better_a express_v and_o declare_v that_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o utter_a destruction_n for_o unbeléever_n but_o we_o must_v noote_v that_o christ_n speak_v special_o of_o those_o who_o impiety_n shall_v bewray_v themselves_o in_o the_o manifest_a contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n for_o we_o must_v not_o apply_v this_o sentence_n to_o everye_o one_o that_o beléeve_v not_o for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n sometime_o beléeve_v not_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n nay_o he_o persecute_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o when_o the_o time_n of_o his_o call_n be_v come_v by_o believe_v he_o be_v save_v and_o escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n also_o the_o elect_a be_v for_o a_o time_n in_o unbeléefe_n but_o not_o for_o ever_o a._n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o ourselves_o 3.3_o titus_n 3.3_o be_v sometime_o foolish_a disobedient_a deceyve_v serve_v diverse_a lust_n and_o voluptuousness_n live_v in_o maliciousness_n and_o envy_n full_a of_o hate_n hate_v one_o another_o but_o after_o that_o the_o love_n and_o kindness_n of_o our_o saviour_n god_n to_o manward_n appear_v etc._n etc._n m._n therefore_o in_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o those_o which_o persevere_v in_o unbeléefe_n and_o he_o add_v the_o reason_n because_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n one_o only_a saviour_n which_o shall_v take_v our_o sin_n from_o we_o malediction_n and_o condemnation_n and_o shall_v abolish_v they_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n that_o every_o one_o which_o beléeve_v in_o he_o may_v be_v absolve_v from_o his_o sin_n from_o malediction_n and_o eternal_a death_n as_o the_o innocent_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o heir_n of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o blessedness_n without_o this_o there_o be_v no_o other_o benediction_n purgation_n satisfaction_n absolution_n and_o salvation_n whereupon_o it_o consequent_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o his_o sin_n and_o subject_a to_o death_n and_o damnation_n which_o have_v not_o this_o son_n in_o who_o alone_o consist_v life_n and_o redemption_n
wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v on_o he_o but_z the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o all_o mortal_a man_n which_o be_v bear_v bring_v with_o they_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o that_o for_o the_o sin_n which_o they_o have_v draw_v from_o adam_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v have_v no_o sin_n and_o have_v on_o he_o our_o flesh_n be_v amongst_o we_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n if_o so_o be_v man_n will_v receyve_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o he_o he_z therefore_o which_o beléeve_v not_o the_o son_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o what_o wrath_n be_v that_o surelye_o the_o very_a same_o of_o the_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v say_v 2.3_o ephe._n 2.3_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n c._n and_o although_o they_o which_o be_v natural_o condemn_v be_v reprobate_n already_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o bring_v new_a death_n unto_o themselves_o by_o their_o own_o infidelity_n 16.19_o math._n 16.19_o and_o to_o this_o end_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n for_o this_o be_v the_o just_a punishment_n of_o man_n contumacye_n and_o pride_n that_o they_o which_o shake_v of_o the_o wholesome_a yoke_n of_o god_n do_v tie_v themselves_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o death_n m._n here_o therefore_o be_v appoint_v the_o perpetuitye_n and_o durance_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v live_v unto_o god_n who_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v that_o be_v capable_a of_o his_o everlasting_a goodness_n for_o he_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_a so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o be_v guilty_a and_o destroy_v for_o ever_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o everlasting_a wrath_n of_o god_n through_o incredulity_n hereupon_o it_o be_v say_v 3.12_o math._n 3.12_o that_o he_o will_v burn_v the_o chaff_n with_o unquencheable_a fire_n they_o shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a torment_n their_o worm_n shall_v not_o die_v 66.24_o math._n 25.46_o esa_n 66.24_o and_o the_o fire_n shall_v not_o be_v quench_v r._n this_o be_v a_o notable_a sermon_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n the_o which_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o remember_v for_o he_o preach_v unto_o we_o christ_n and_o set_v he_o before_o we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v what_o great_a treasure_n of_o blessing_n we_o possess_v in_o he_o through_o faith_n bu_n let_v we_o therefore_o often_o time_n diligent_o read_v over_o the_o same_o and_o deep_o consider_v the_o same_o in_o our_o mind_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v reap_v thereby_o the_o most_o pleasant_a fruit_n of_o the_o lively_a knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v increase_v and_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o and_o abide_v firm_a and_o sound_o for_o ever_o ❧_o the_o four_o chapter_n 1._o as_o soon_o as_o the_o lord_n know_v how_o the_o pharisee_n have_v hear_v that_o jesus_n make_v and_o baptize_v mo_z disciple_n than_o john_n r._n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o evangelist_n have_v describe_v the_o true_a way_n of_o justify_v now_o in_o this_o chapter_n he_o add_v the_o example_n of_o true_a justification_n in_o the_o harlot_n of_o samaria_n lest_o that_o doctrine_n shall_v seem_v frivolous_a and_o vain_a for_o want_v of_o a_o example_n bu_n all_o the_o part_n of_o this_o history_n be_v very_o well_o knit_v together_o for_o now_o the_o evangelist_n pass_v from_o the_o communication_n of_o christ_n &_o nicodemus_n and_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n to_o describe_v another_o conference_n between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v out_o of_o judea_n for_o when_o he_o know_v that_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr be_v evyll_n affection_a he_o will_v not_o put_v himself_o in_o danger_n of_o their_o fury_n before_o the_o appoint_a time_n come_v therefore_o leave_v jewrye_n he_o go_v again_o into_o galilee_n wherefore_o he_o come_v not_o of_o purpose_n into_o samaria_n there_o to_o abide_v but_o because_o he_o must_v pass_v through_o the_o same_o into_o galilee_n assoon_o as_o the_o lord_n know_v m._n the_o evangelist_n speak_v not_o here_o as_o though_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o any_o time_n ignorant_a of_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o need_v not_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o devise_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o know_v their_o evyll_n cogitation_n &_o therefore_o he_o shun_v their_o fury_n c._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v only_o of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v swear_v enemy_n unto_o christ_n not_o that_o the_o other_o scribe_n be_v his_o friend_n but_o because_o this_o sect_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr than_o reign_v and_o be_v mad_a under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o godly_a zeal_n saint_n john_n say_v here_o that_o these_o man_n hear_v how_o that_o christ_n make_v and_o baptise_a more_o disciple_n than_o john_n the_o baptist_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o they_o see_v this_o first_o of_o all_o this_o be_v heretical_a by_o the_o sacerdotal_a or_o priestly_a judgement_n for_o this_o may_v have_v divide_v the_o church_n and_o have_v bread_n schism_n for_o so_o many_o as_o become_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v baptise_a go_v to_o a_o new_a church_n and_o embrace_v the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr scribe_n and_o priest_n c._n moreover_o their_o mind_n be_v stir_v up_o before_o by_o the_o gather_n together_o of_o disciple_n by_o john_n they_o be_v now_o the_o more_o exasperate_a and_o set_v on_o fire_n when_o they_o see_v that_o christ_n come_v and_o draw_v more_o disciple_n after_o he_o than_o john_n have_v do_v for_o from_o the_o time_n that_o john_n preach_v himself_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o great_a number_n follow_v christ_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n begin_v now_o to_o cease_v and_o so_o by_o little_a and_o little_a he_o resign_v to_o christ_n the_o office_n of_o teach_v and_o baptise_v a._n as_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v 3_o math._n 3_o he_o must_v increase_v but_o i_o must_v decrease_v the_o lord_n make_v disciple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o win_v unto_o he_o hearer_n and_o bind_v they_o unto_o he_o with_o the_o knot_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o hearer_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v always_o call_v from_o the_o beginning_n disciple_n afterward_o christian_n 2._o though_o that_o jesus_n himself_o baptise_a not_o but_o his_o disciple_n a._n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o jewrye_n and_o that_o he_o there_o baptise_a the_o which_o saint_n john_n here_o expound_v say_v that_o he_o baptise_a by_o his_o disciple_n aug._n therefore_o the_o lord_n baptise_a baptize_v christ_n baptize_v not_o &_o yet_o do_v baptize_v and_o baptise_a not_o for_o he_o baptise_a because_o it_o be_v he_o that_o cleanse_v wash_v and_o purify_v the_o sin_n he_o baptise_a not_o because_o he_o use_v not_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n of_o dip_v or_o duck_v in_o the_o water_n the_o disciple_n use_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o body_n and_o he_o join_v thereunto_o his_o majesty_n and_o grace_n b._n therefore_o the_o lord_n baptise_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o disciple_n this_o outward_a sign_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o this_o ministry_n christ_n choose_v his_o apostle_n as_o therefore_o by_o this_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v order_v &_o govern_v even_o so_o he_o think_v good_a to_o prepare_v his_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o and_o to_o enter_v they_o into_o this_o holy_a ministry_n m._n for_o he_o say_v afterward_o to_o his_o apostle_n go_v you_o forth_o 1●_n mat._n 28.19_o mat._n 16_o 1●_n and_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n c._n so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o the_o same_o be_v call_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o man_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o baptism_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o that_o the_o force_n thereof_o do_v whole_o hang_v upon_o the_o author_n in_o who_o name_n and_o at_o who_o commandment_n the_o same_o be_v minister_v whereby_o we_o have_v a_o singular_a consolation_n for_o see_v we_o know_v that_o our_o baptism_n be_v of_o no_o less_o efficasie_a to_o cleanse_v and_o to_o renew_v we_o than_o if_o the_o same_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o
which_o the_o child_n very_o seldom_o consider_v thou_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o all_o the_o evangelicall_a history_n any_o one_o son_n which_o come_v unto_o christ_n and_o say_v .15.22_o math._n 17.14_o and_o .9.18_o and_o .15.22_o lord_n come_v down_o before_o that_o my_o father_n dye_v but_o you_o shall_v often_o read_v of_o this_o affection_n and_o care_n of_o parent_n for_o their_o child_n which_o they_o have_v utter_v unto_o christ_n m._n howbeit_o also_o it_o appear_v in_o this_o man_n what_o corrupt_a &_o preposterous_a love_n some_o parent_n bear_v towards_o their_o child_n for_o he_o only_o seek_v the_o corporal_a health_n of_o his_o son_n neglect_v the_o spiritual_a and_o true_a life_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v begin_v to_o teach_v he_o say_v not_o lord_n help_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o as_o for_o our_o bodylye_a health_n child_n love_n in_o many_o parent_n corrupt_v towards_o their_o child_n let_v that_o be_v as_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n but_o he_o say_v and_o that_o earnest_o lord_n come_v down_o before_o my_o son_n dye_v and_o what_o father_n at_o any_o time_n come_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v lord_n my_o son_n have_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n whereby_o i_o perceyve_v that_o he_o be_v sick_a in_o soul_n and_o in_o great_a peril_n help_v he_o i_o beseech_v thou_o also_o they_o which_o at_o this_o day_n desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n how_o many_o of_o they_o be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o which_o desire_n the_o congregation_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v faith_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o patience_n 50._o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o go_v thy_o way_n thy_o son_n lyve_v the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n that_o jesus_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o and_o go_v his_o way_n jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o bu_n the_o lord_n in_o very_a deed_n confess_v that_o he_o can_v do_v much_o more_o than_o the_o ruler_n trust_v he_o can_v do_v be_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o death_n which_o can_v both_o retain_v the_o life_n when_o it_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o body_n and_o also_o when_o it_o be_v clean_o go_v call_v the_o same_o again_o for_o he_o say_v go_v thy_o way_n thy_o son_n live_v c._n signify_v that_o he_o be_v escape_v out_o of_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n but_o see_v this_o man_n proceed_v and_o persevere_v in_o entreat_v and_o pray_v christ_n obtain_v at_o the_o leangth_n his_o heart_n desire_v thou_o may_v gather_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o reprehend_v he_o because_o he_o will_v whole_o reject_v he_o and_o refuse_v his_o prayer_n but_o rather_o to_o correct_v that_o vice_n which_o stay_v he_o from_o come_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o we_o say_v already_o before_o that_o this_o reprehension_n belong_v rather_o to_o all_o the_o people_n than_o to_o one_o man_n moreover_o here_o the_o singular_a humanity_n and_o gentleness_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n appear_v in_o that_o he_o bear_v with_o the_o man_n rudeness_n extend_v his_o power_n far_o than_o he_o look_v for_o he_o request_v that_o christ_n will_v heal_v his_o son_n by_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o think_v that_o he_o can_v heal_v his_o sick_a son_n of_o his_o disease_n but_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v raise_v his_o son_n be_v dead_a from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o therefore_o he_o urge_v he_o to_o make_v haste_n lest_o death_n prevent_v he_o r._n and_o by_o this_o make_n of_o haste_n he_o declare_v his_o incredulity_n for_o unbelief_n make_v haste_n but_o faith_n wait_v and_o tarry_v the_o lord_n leisure_n 1●_n faith_n tarry_v the_o lord_n leisure_n esa_n 28_o 1●_n and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n say_v he_o which_o believe_v shall_v not_o make_v haste_n c._n see_v then_o christ_n bear_v with_o both_o these_o infyrmitye_n we_o may_v hereby_o gather_v of_o how_o great_a price_n he_o esteem_v even_o the_o least_o faith_n this_o also_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o christ_n in_v not_o satisfy_v his_o will_n and_o desire_n work_v by_o mean_n which_o we_o think_v not_o of_o to_o help_v we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o he_o any_o thing_n the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n r._n therefore_o by_o this_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o the_o son_n be_v heal_v but_o also_o the_o father_n faith_n increase_v and_o confirm_v and_o as_o the_o son_n by_o this_o word_n as_o by_o a_o sovereign_a medicine_n receyve_v health_n so_o also_o the_o father_n receyve_v strength_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o faith_n be_v strong_a and_o firm_a which_o be_v conceyve_v by_o the_o word_n and_o not_o by_o miracle_n a._n but_o do_v he_o not_o believe_v at_o the_o first_o how_o have_v he_o come_v unto_o christ_n to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n at_o his_o hand_n except_o he_o have_v be_v endue_v with_o some_o faith_n i_o answer_v bu_n he_o do_v at_o the_o first_o believe_v the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v not_o come_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o first_o conceyve_v some_o notable_a hope_n of_o his_o power_n and_o clemencye_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o understand_v his_o promise_n he_o beléeve_v more_o firmelye_o therefore_o he_o trouble_v the_o lord_n no_o far_o but_o go_v his_o way_n and_o as_o he_o beléeve_v he_o find_v his_o son_n restoor_v to_o health_n c._n for_o because_o he_o come_v with_o this_o persuasion_n that_o christ_n be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v so_o ready_o to_o believe_v that_o take_v hold_v of_o one_o word_n he_o print_v the_o same_o in_o his_o mind_n and_o although_o he_o do_v not_o so_o reverentlye_o esteem_v and_o think_v of_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o become_v he_o yet_o notwithstanding_o a_o short_a promise_n make_v he_o to_o conceyve_v sudden_o a_o assure_a hope_n insomuch_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o life_n of_o his_o son_n to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o only_a word_n of_o christ_n god_n promptness_n in_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o this_o promptness_n and_o readiness_n ought_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o receyve_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o seldom_o or_o never_o shall_v such_o present_a effect_n follow_v in_o the_o hearer_n for_o how_o many_o be_v there_o which_o profit_n so_o much_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o many_o sermon_n as_o this_o profane_a man_n profit_v at_o the_o hear_n of_o one_o word_n wherefore_o we_o must_v use_v the_o more_o diligence_n in_o shake_v of_o our_o dulness_n and_o s●outh_n and_o especial_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o god_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o so_o to_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v be_v no_o less_o ready_a to_o believe_v than_o he_o be_v gentle_a and_o ready_o to_o promise_v 51_o and_o as_o he_o be_v now_o go_v down_o the_o servant_n meet_v he_o and_o tell_v he_o say_v thy_o son_n lyve_v bu_n that_o which_o now_o follow_v do_v set_v forth_o as_o well_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o effect_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n the_o miracle_n may_v be_v more_o notable_a and_o more_o pure_o purge_v from_o all_o evyll_n suspicion_n and_o also_o that_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n may_v more_v and_o more_o appear_v a._n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n m._n the_o lad_n be_v heal_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n otherwise_o he_o have_v dye_v by_o the_o contagiousnesse_n of_o his_o sickness_n but_o this_o be_v know_v as_o yet_o to_o no_o man_n the_o servant_n bring_v word_n that_o his_o son_n be_v recover_v but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o power_n he_o be_v revyue_v that_o they_o know_v not_o therefore_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o servant_n with_o he_o by_o the_o way_n and_o the_o glad_a tiding_n which_o they_o bring_v unto_o the_o sorrowful_a father_n serve_v thus_o far_o to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v speak_v the_o truth_n concern_v the_o son_n restoor_v to_o health_n though_o he_o be_v absent_a the_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o spyrite_n of_o prophecy_n and_o also_o to_o be_v beléeve_v of_o the_o father_n as_o a_o prophetical_a oracle_n c._n moreover_o with_o the_o efficacye_n of_o the_o word_n here_o be_v also_o describe_v the_o effect_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o christ_n restore_v the_o son_n to_o life_n which_o be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n even_o so_o the_o father_n by_o his_o faith_n in_o a_o moment_n recover_v and_o receyve_v again_o his_o son_n safe_a and_o sound_o let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o so_o often_o as_o the_o lord_n offer_v unto_o we_o his_o benefit_n his_o power_n
deal_v that_o which_o serve_v their_o turn_n to_o cavil_n they_o take_v but_o that_o which_o take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o cavil_n they_o let_v alone_o a._n so_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n the_o pharisées_fw-fr make_v mention_v only_o of_o the_o clay_n which_o christ_n make_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o of_o so_o great_a a_o miracle_n they_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n 13._o and_o he_o that_o be_v heal_v wist_v not_o who_o it_o be_v for_o jesus_n have_v get_v himself_o away_o because_o there_o be_v press_n of_o people_n in_o that_o place_n and_o he_o that_o be_v heal_v wist_v not_o who_o it_o be_v m._n a_o wonderful_a thing_n christ_n be_v unknown_a to_o this_o sick_a man_n which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o health_n he_o remember_v nothing_o concern_v christ_n but_o these_o two_o thing_n namely_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v hard_a the_o which_o he_o obey_v and_o the_o health_n which_o he_o recover_v by_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o but_o he_o be_v he_o know_v not_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o his_o name_n c._n herebye_o therefore_o we_o gather_v that_o it_o can_v be_v attribute_v to_o this_o man_n faith_n that_o he_o be_v make_v whole_a who_o be_v make_v whole_a know_v not_o his_o physician_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o that_o he_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o directrix_fw-la faith_n in_o very_a deed_n as_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v some_o impulsion_n of_o faith_n in_o he_o so_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o text_n it_o evidentlye_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v whole_o expert_a of_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o pure_a light_n upon_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v stay_v himself_o bu_n therefore_o at_o this_o time_n he_o answer_v nothing_o to_o their_o question_n but_o deliberate_v with_o himself_o and_o consider_v of_o more_o diligent_a enquiry_n and_o examination_n but_o the_o evangelist_n john_n add_v the_o cause_n why_o many_o know_v not_o the_o author_n of_o so_o great_a a_o miracle_n say_v for_o jesus_n have_v get_v himself_o away_o c._n christ_n will_v not_o have_v the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o work_n to_o vanish_v away_o and_o to_o be_v quite_o out_o of_o remembrance_n but_o will_v have_v the_o same_o know_v before_o that_o he_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o therefore_o he_o get_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o a_o little_a while_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o matter_n itself_o without_o have_v any_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n m._n and_o also_o that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o desire_v the_o common_a praise_n of_o the_o people_n think_v it_o better_a to_o suffer_v the_o matter_n itself_o to_o praise_v and_o extol_v the_o divine_a power_n christ_n vain_a glory_n avoid_v by_o christ_n thus_o they_o always_o behave_v themselves_o which_o seek_v not_o their_o own_o glory_n but_o to_o do_v good_a othersome_a say_v that_o he_o go_v apart_o lest_o he_o may_v provoke_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v more_o vehement_a against_o he_o by_o his_o presence_n r._n therefore_o although_o he_o can_v have_v destroy_v his_o adversary_n with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n yet_o he_o abase_v himself_o even_o to_o extreme_a impotency_n and_o go_v apart_o privy_o from_o among_o the_o multitude_n not_o because_o his_o nature_n fear_v death_n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v learn_v by_o his_o example_n not_o to_o tempt_v god_n but_o to_o shun_v the_o madness_n of_o such_o as_o be_v angry_a until_o their_o anger_n be_v somewhat_o assuage_v for_o heavy_a say_v solomon_n be_v a_o stone_n and_o the_o sand_n weighty_a but_o a_o fool_n wrath_n be_v hevy_a than_o they_o both_o 14._o afterward_o jesus_n find_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o behold_v thou_o be_v make_v whole_a sin_n no_o more_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n come_v unto_o thou_o afterward_o jesus_n find_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n bu_n hitherto_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o miracle_n have_v be_v diligent_o discuss_v and_o now_o jesus_n shalbée_v declare_v manifest_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o miracle_n for_o jesus_n offer_v himself_o again_o to_o the_o man_n that_o be_v heal_v more_o full_o instruct_v he_o that_o he_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o of_o who_o he_o receive_v his_o health_n c._n it_o appear_v therefore_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o hide_v himself_o for_o a_o time_n that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o benefit_n may_v perish_v for_o now_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n he_o open_o show_v himself_o in_o the_o former_a place_n he_o mean_v to_o have_v the_o work_n only_o know_v and_o now_o he_o will_v have_v himself_o proclaim_v to_o be_v the_o author_n b._n least_o the_o divine_a work_n shall_v be_v oppress_v through_o envy_n but_o be_v receive_v as_o it_o be_v meet_v it_o may_v prove_v unto_o the_o godly_a that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o wicked_a to_o who_o all_o thing_n turn_v to_o the_o worst_a may_v be_v the_o more_o blind_v m._n let_v we_o note_v here_o into_o what_o place_n the_o lord_n get_v himself_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o feast_n day_n before_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o come_v to_o that_o famous_a lazarhouse_n in_o which_o lie_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o sick_a person_n here_o also_o we_o see_v that_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o which_o be_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o fourteen_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n the_o temple_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o house_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o house_n of_o worship_n to_o this_o place_n he_o come_v not_o to_o offer_v according_a to_o the_o law_n worship_n the_o temple_n be_v the_o place_n of_o worship_n but_o to_o advance_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o his_o example_n to_o come_v into_o ecclesiastical_a place_n with_o reverence_n that_o in_o they_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v exercise_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o piety_n and_o to_o faith_n and_o to_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n also_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o man_n which_o be_v restore_v to_o health_n go_v straight_o way_n after_o he_o be_v heal_v into_o the_o temple_n to_o geve_v thanks_n to_o god_n from_o who_o he_o know_v all_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v for_o his_o health_n a._n let_v we_o also_o therefore_o learn_v to_o geve_v condign_a thanks_n for_o those_o benefit_n which_o god_n bestow_v on_o we_o lest_o the_o same_o ingratitude_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o nine_o leper_n that_o be_v cleanse_v benefit_n thank_n geve_v for_o god_n benefit_n do_v make_v we_o altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o behold_v thou_o be_v now_o make_v whole_a m._n he_o which_o have_v cure_v the_o sick_a admonish_v those_o who_o he_o have_v heal_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o physician_n to_o preserve_v their_o receive_a health_n by_o good_a diet_n lest_o by_o sin_v they_o lose_v that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v through_o grace_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o else_o then_o to_o desire_v that_o we_o may_v constant_o and_o firm_o retain_v that_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v at_o his_o hand_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n curate_n have_v need_n to_o be_v very_o vigilant_a lest_o the_o grace_n receive_v be_v lose_v again_o by_o negligence_n c._n christ_n therefore_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n that_o we_o do_v abuse_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n unless_o we_o be_v thankful_a for_o they_o for_o christ_n do_v not_o cast_v the_o man_n in_o the_o tooth_n with_o that_o which_o he_o have_v give_v he_o but_o do_v only_o teach_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o heal_v that_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o grace_n receive_v he_o may_v worship_n god_n his_o deliverer_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o to_o this_o end_n god_n have_v redeem_v we_o and_o bestow_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o other_o béenefit_n upon_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v thankful_a unto_o he_o bu_n furthermore_o sickness_n sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sickness_n let_v we_o learn_v by_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o most_o part_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v often_o time_n scourge_v our_o sin_n with_o the_o whip_n of_o sickness_n and_o corporal_a grief_n c._n what_o evil_a soever_o therefore_o we_o suffer_v we_o must_v impute_v the_o same_o to_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o calamity_n which_o be_v incident_a to_o man_n come_v not_o by_o chane_n but_o be_v
m._n this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v at_o that_o time_n and_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v afterward_o untyll_o his_o ascension_n c._n for_o he_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n that_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v show_v in_o heal_v the_o sick_a man_n be_v not_o the_o chief_a of_o those_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o for_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o have_v give_v there_o a_o taste_n only_o of_o that_o grace_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v proper_o both_o a_o minister_n and_o the_o author_n name_o that_o he_o may_v restore_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n b._n therefore_o where_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o great_a thing_n he_o mean_v the_o raise_n again_o of_o man_n from_o death_n to_o life_n the_o which_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n both_o of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n and_o also_o of_o the_o internal_a justification_n of_o the_o elect_a by_o faith_n both_o which_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v by_o his_o power_n as_o hereby_o he_o have_v declare_v what_o great_a work_n than_o these_o can_v the_o father_n do_v because_o you_o shall_v marvel_v here_o he_o do_v geve_v a_o secret_a nyp_n to_o their_o ingratitude_n because_o they_o despise_v that_o so_o manifest_a a_o show_n token_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o you_o be_v dull_a and_o senseless_a yet_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n shall_v do_v hereafter_o by_o i_o shall_v make_v you_o to_o marvel_n whether_o you_o will_v or_o no._n notwithstanding_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v fulfil_v see_v you_o know_v that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n answer_n be_v make_v 6.9_o esay_n 6.9_o that_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o their_o affection_n but_o only_o note_v how_o magnificent_o he_o will_v within_o a_o while_n after_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n wherefore_o he_o say_v not_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v but_o he_o say_v that_o you_o may_v marvel_v because_o the_o wicked_a of_o who_o he_o speak_v here_o will_v easylye_o be_v cause_v to_o wonder_n but_o will_v not_o in_o any_o wise_n be_v bring_v to_o faith_n they_o marvel_v when_o lazarus_n be_v raise_v up_o they_o say_v this_o man_n do_v many_o sign_n 11.47_o joh._n 11.47_o but_o they_o do_v not_o hereupon_o by_o and_o by_o believe_v on_o he_o but_o consult_v the_o more_o to_o kill_v he_o aug._n they_o marvel_v therefore_o but_o they_o be_v not_o convert_v m._n but_o this_o kind_n of_o admiration_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n for_o their_o malice_n and_o impiety_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n follow_v 21._o for_o likewise_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o quicken_v they_o even_o so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v for_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o bu_n by_o evident_a act_n or_o by_o operation_n he_o proove_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n do_v all_o one_o thing_n and_o be_v therefore_o equal_a in_o the_o unitye_n of_o substance_n be_v one_o true_a god_n c._n therefore_o briefelye_o he_o here_o declare_v what_o office_n be_v commit_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n for_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o choose_v one_o kind_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o doctrine_n be_v general_a in_o the_o which_o he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n for_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o life_n righteousness_n all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o high_a substance_n to_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o preserve_v and_o to_o quicken_v but_o i_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a preserve_v &_o quicken_v i_o differ_v nothing_o therefore_o from_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n yea_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o power_n soever_o the_o father_n do_v quicken_v by_o the_o same_o do_v i_o make_v alyve_a also_o but_o we_o must_v note_v how_o christ_n bring_v life_n unto_o we_o for_o he_o find_v we_o all_o dead_a therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o begin_v at_o the_o resurrection_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a that_o he_o join_v these_o two_o word_n to_o raise_v and_o to_o quicken_v together_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o death_n except_o christ_n ful_o and_o perfect_o restore_v unto_o we_o life_n m._n furthermore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o gather_v out_o of_o these_o word_n that_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o some_o and_o the_o son_n othersome_a from_o death_n when_o as_o they_o be_v not_o only_o equal_a but_o also_o do_v work_v a_o like_a as_o be_v say_v afore_o whereupon_o 11.41_o john_n 11.41_o when_o he_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n he_o lyft_v up_o his_o eye_n toward_o heaven_n give_v thanks_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v behold_v in_o that_o work_n not_o only_o the_o power_n of_o the_o son_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n also_o bu_n this_o parcel_n who_o he_o will_v do_v challenge_n unto_o the_o son_n not_o only_o full_a and_o free_a power_n but_o also_o note_v the_o order_n of_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n c._n for_o he_o make_v not_o this_o life_n appertain_v to_o all_o man_n but_o signify_v that_o he_o do_v special_o bestow_v this_o grace_n upon_o the_o elect_a elect_a they_o believe_v be_v the_o elect_a bu_n and_o they_o be_v the_o elect_a and_o choose_v of_o god_n which_o believe_v a._n therefore_o as_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n can_v have_v raise_v all_o the_o dead_a to_o life_n again_o if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o 9_o math._n 9_o be_v read_v to_o have_v raise_v only_o a_o few_o as_o jairous_a daughter_n the_o widow_n son_n and_o lazarus_n 11._o luke_n 7._o john_n 11._o even_o so_o although_o he_o have_v free_a and_o full_a power_n in_o himself_o to_o quicken_v yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o use_v the_o same_o only_a toward_o the_o elect_a for_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v 22._o neither_o judge_v the_o father_n any_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n c._n now_o he_o more_o plain_o expound_v the_o whole_a affyrm_v that_o the_o father_n in_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o the_o son_n do_v govern_v the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o same_o rule_v all_o thing_n b._n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o as_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o word_n even_o so_o also_o he_o do_v judge_v rule_n and_o govern_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o same_o c._n for_o the_o evangelist_n take_v judgement_n for_o rule_n and_o power_n according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n now_o we_o have_v the_o same_o name_o that_o christ_n have_v receyve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o the_o father_n to_o govern_v and_o rule_v heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o his_o pleasure_n a._n for_o all_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n also_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o in_o heaven_n 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o and_o in_o earth_n c._n but_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n 28.18_o mat._n 28.18_o as_o of_o man_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v imagine_v that_o the_o father_n have_v resign_v his_o imperial_a right_a shall_v be_v idle_a as_o a_o private_a man_n in_o heaven_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o change_v in_o the_o father_n in_o that_o he_o have_v make_v christ_n king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o 1.15_o christ_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o the_o father_n colo._n 1.15_o for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o work_v in_o he_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o seek_v to_o ascend_v unto_o god_n all_o our_o sense_n fail_v we_o christ_n be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n as_o the_o lively_a invisible_a image_n of_o god_n in_o who_o face_n god_n the_o father_n who_o otherwise_o be_v far_o from_o we_o appear_v unto_o we_o lest_o the_o bare_a majesty_n of_o god_n by_o his_o exceed_a brightness_n shall_v overcome_v us._n m._n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o antichrist_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n do_v not_o without_o blasphemye_n challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o power_n of_o judge_v all_o man_n and_o with_o great_a impudencye_n be_v a_o sinful_a man_n neither_o judge_v just_o nor_o be_v exempt_v just_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o man_n blaspheme●_n the_o bishop_n o●_n rome_n 〈◊〉_d blaspheme●_n say_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n a._n this_o be_v his_o sacrilegious_a tyranny_n by_o which_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o take_v that_o to_o himself_o which_o belong_v
nothing_o else_o then_o to_o understande_v to_o remember_v to_o know_v and_o to_o think_v opinion_n faith_n be_v not_o a_o opinion_n m._n we_o must_v note_v that_o to_o believe_v christ_n be_v by_o faith_n to_o receive_v his_o word_n and_o to_o believe_v the_o father_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o send_v his_o son_n into_o this_o world_n to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o same_o therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v god_n not_o symplye_o as_o god_n of_o the_o which_o faith_n the_o jew_n brag_n but_o as_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o as_o the_o sender_n in_o he_o that_o send_v he_z which_o want_v this_o faith_n may_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o blind_a jew_n &_o not_o among_o christian_n he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n bu_n therefore_o the_o first_o thing_n in_o the_o order_n of_o salvation_n &_o justification_n be_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n but_o not_o every_o one_o word_n but_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n only_o our_o justifier_n &_o saviour_n and_o herein_o be_v require_v preach_v 10.14_o ro._n 10.14_o for_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v with_o out_o a_o preacher_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v we_o ready_a to_o hear_v when_o as_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o father_n be_v exclude_v for_o faith_n cleave_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o not_o to_o the_o word_n of_o man_n c._n christ_n afterward_o commend_v the_o fruit_n of_o obedience_n say_v have_v everlasting_a life_n faith_n life_n eternal_a the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o perform_v the_o same_o for_o who_o can_v be_v so_o flinty_a heart_a but_o that_o he_o can_v be_v content_v willing_o to_o submit_v himself_o unto_o christ_n when_o he_o see_v the_o reward_n of_o everlasting_a life_n set_v before_o he_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v how_o few_o he_o win_v unto_o he_o by_o this_o clemency_n such_o be_v our_o wickedness_n that_o we_o have_v rather_o willing_o perish_v then_o to_o geve_v ourselves_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o through_o he_o we_o may_v be_v save_v furthermore_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v confirm_v by_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o christ_n testify_v that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n and_o not_o from_o man_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o himself_o but_o that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o 14.10_o joh._n 14.10_o m._n and_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o diminish_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o son_n honour_n that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v inferior_a to_o he_o that_o send_v he_o bu_n but_o in_o that_o the_o son_n be_v send_v it_o belong_v rather_o to_o dispensation_n then_o to_o imbecility_n m._n the_o ambassador_n have_v deserve_o less_o honour_n than_o the_o emperor_n because_o he_o be_v neither_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o lord_n nor_o yet_o of_o such_o power_n as_o the_o emperor_n be_v but_o a_o minister_n and_o a_o servant_n but_o christ_n be_v send_v into_o this_o world_n not_o as_o a_o servant_n of_o his_o lord_n but_o as_o a_o son_n of_o his_o father_n not_o as_o one_o of_o less_o power_n but_o as_o his_o equal_a in_o all_o thing_n not_o as_o of_o another_o nature_n and_o substance_n but_o as_o coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o he_o in_o every_o condition_n godhead_n christ_n equal_a to_o the_o father_n touch_v the_o godhead_n and_o therefore_o worthy_a to_o be_v no_o less_o honour_v than_o the_o father_n if_o the_o father_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n and_o descend_v from_o heaven_n as_o he_o have_v do_v bu_n for_o therefore_o the_o father_n send_v the_o eternal_a word_n that_o in_o he_o he_o may_v manifestlye_o declare_v himself_o unto_o us._n for_o the_o son_n be_v a_o most_o proper_a character_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n 1.3_o heb._n 1.3_o aug._n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n but_o not_o separate_v from_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n m._n because_o god_n have_v not_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v through_o he_o 3.17_o john_n 3.17_o christ_n here_o confirm_v the_o sentence_n go_v before_o concern_v eternal_a life_n 1.21_o math._n 1.21_o for_o he_o come_v to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o death_n be_v at_o a_o end_n 15.56_o rom._n 6.23_o 1._o cor._n 15.56_o because_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n and_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n c._n we_o therefore_o be_v out_o of_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n because_o we_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n bu_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o be_v escape_v from_o death_n to_o life_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o without_o deep_a consideration_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v alredye_a escape_v from_o death_n because_o the_o seed_n of_o life_n by_o which_o we_o be_v call_v 1.23_o 1._o pet._n 1.23_o be_v incorruptible_a in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o because_o they_o be_v already_o through_o hope_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o heavenlye_a glory_n 17.21_o ephe._n 2.6_o luk._n 17.21_o and_o also_o have_v within_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o although_o their_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o god_n in_o christ_n 3.3_o colos_n 3.3_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o possess_v the_o same_o through_o faith_n and_o in_o that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o death_n and_o do_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o safety_n through_o the_o protection_n of_o christ_n they_o do_v not_o therefore_o cease_v to_o be_v in_o peace_n nevertheless_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v so_o in_o life_n in_o this_o present_a world_n that_o they_o always_o carry_v about_o with_o they_o the_o matter_n or_o cause_n of_o death_n but_o the_o spirit_n which_o dwell_v in_o they_o be_v life_n which_o at_o the_o length_n shall_v abolishe_v the_o relic_n of_o death_n 26_o 1._o cor._n 15_o 26_o for_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n be_v most_o true_a the_o last_o enemy_n that_o shall_v be_v destroy_v be_v death_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o place_n the_o full_a deliverance_n from_o death_n or_o the_o perfect_a exhibition_n of_o life_n be_v not_o handle_v but_o although_o that_o life_n be_v but_o begin_v in_o we_o yet_o nevertheless_o christ_n pronounce_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o certain_a to_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o death_n &_o no_o marvel_n they_o be_v ingraff_v in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o bottomless_a well_o of_o life_n m._n this_o place_n also_o make_v very_o much_o to_o the_o confute_v of_o their_o opinion_n which_o most_o impudent_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o as_o dye_v die_v together_o with_o their_o body_n and_o of_o their_o opinion_n also_o which_o say_v that_o they_o sleep_v after_o death_n until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o that_o which_o christ_n speak_v here_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o body_n life_n the_o soul_n pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o it_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o the_o grave_n but_o of_o the_o soul_n which_o pass_v from_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n to_o life_n even_o as_o christ_n in_o plain_a word_n say_v to_o the_o thief_n this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 1.23_o luk._n 23.43_o philip._n 1.23_o i_o desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n evident_o show_v that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o spirit_n with_o christ_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v discharge_v and_o loose_v from_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o body_n otherwise_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o insomuch_o that_o he_o have_v no_o need_n so_o great_o to_o desire_v the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o body_n to_o this_o thing_n 2.10_o galat._n 2.10_o except_o he_o have_v beléeve_v that_o his_o spirit_n be_v enter_v after_o death_n into_o everlasting_a life_n shall_v spéedy_o come_v unto_o chiste_n a_o howbeit_o this_o place_n ought_v proper_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o expound_v of_o that_o escape_n and_o passage_n from_o death_n to_o life_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v alredye_n bu_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n truelye_o beléeve_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n christ_n begin_v to_o live_v in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n r._n therefore_o death_n in_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o and_o make_v the_o gate_n
which_o heavenly_a food_n for_o when_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o those_o soul_n be_v like_a to_o famish_v which_o want_v this_o meat_n therefore_o thou_o shall_v then_o find_v life_n in_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v thou_o seek_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o life_n in_o his_o flesh_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o forsake_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n there_o be_v nothing_o before_o our_o eye_n but_o death_n neither_o do_v he_o bring_v we_o any_o other_o way_n to_o feel_v of_o his_o divine_a power_n than_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n m._n therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n which_o shall_v be_v by_o his_o death_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o intend_v to_o offer_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n a_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n question_n but_o why_o do_v he_o several_o make_v mention_v of_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o flesh_n answer_v answer_v i_o answer_v christ_n in_o this_o have_v respect_n and_o regard_v te_fw-mi our_o rudeness_n for_o when_o distinct_o he_o express_v meat_n and_o drink_v by_o themselves_o he_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o life_n which_o he_o geve_v be_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o each_o point_n lest_o we_o shall_v fain_v and_o imagine_v to_o ourselves_o some_o half_a and_o unperfect_a life_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o shall_v want_v no_o part_n of_o life_n if_o so_o be_v we_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n euenso_fw-la in_o the_o supper_n which_o agree_v with_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o content_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n he_o join_v thereunto_o the_o cup_n that_o have_v therein_o a_o doule_a pledge_n of_o life_n we_o may_v be_v content_v with_o he_o alone_a for_o he_o shall_v find_v no_o part_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n which_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n alone_o be_v his_o life_n 56._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n m._n these_o word_n pertain_v to_o the_o similitude_n of_o such_o as_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v more_o ample_o declare_v the_o premise_n meat_n and_o drink_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o eater_n and_o drinker_n of_o the_o same_o evenso_fw-la they_o abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o they_o have_v life_n otherwise_o meat_n without_o the_o eater_n or_o not_o abide_v in_o he_o that_o have_v eat_v the_o same_o do_v not_o nourish_v insomuche_o that_o life_n can_v consist_v if_o so_o be_v the_o eater_n and_o the_o meat_n be_v separate_v a_o sunder_o these_o thing_n be_v temporal_a and_o incorruptible_a and_o therefore_o imperfect_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n set_v forth_o a_o sertayne_v image_n of_o he_o and_o do_v teach_v we_o this_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_o require_v that_o he_o which_o will_v have_v eternal_a life_n must_v have_v christ_n the_o true_a food_n of_o life_n abide_v in_o he_o in_o such_o wise_n that_o he_o may_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v separate_v and_o whosoever_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v christ_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o also_o in_o he_o c._o see_v therefore_o christ_n alone_a contain_v life_n in_o himself_o he_o prescribe_v unto_o we_o here_o a_o way_n how_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o namely_o if_o so_o be_v we_o eat_v his_o flesh_n even_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v deny_v himself_o to_o be_v we_o otherways_o then_o by_o eat_v he_o through_o faith_n for_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o the_o god_n christ_n which_o neglect_v man_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v partaker_n of_o any_o thing_n with_o christ_n thou_o must_v first_o of_o all_o take_v heed_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o despise_v or_o disdain_v his_o flesh_n bu_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n the_o mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n be_v more_o evident_o and_o full_o express_v so_o that_o he_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drynk_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o with_o a_o firm_a faith_n beleve_v that_o christ_n the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v incarnate_a crucefy_v raise_v again_o for_o he_o that_o he_o wash_v we_o with_o his_o dloude_n from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n his_o father_n whosoever_o believe_v this_o have_v life_n within_o he_o even_o the_o quicken_a spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o power_n of_o righteousness_n and_o redemtion_n and_o so_o christ_n lyve_v in_o he_o &_o he_o in_o christ_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o m._n because_o this_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o corruption_n but_o have_v always_o in_o they_o power_n to_o geve_v life_n therefore_o he_o use_v the_o word_n quicken_a to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o may_v agree_v with_o that_o whereas_o he_o promise_v everlasting_a life_n to_o such_o as_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n c._n for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a bond_n of_o unity_n and_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o do_v grow_v with_o we_o when_o our_o faith_n do_v rest_n and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o his_o death_n bu_n this_o place_n therefore_o of_o the_o gospel_n do_v agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v 3_o rom_n 3_o we_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n furthermore_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o external_a sign_n of_o bread_n of_o which_o many_o of_o the_o unbeléeving_n do_v eat_v who_o notwithstanding_o be_v far_o from_o christ_n also_o their_o error_n be_v hereby_o confute_v which_o think_v that_o judas_n do_v no_o less_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n see_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o bread_n to_o all_o for_o this_o be_v most_o sertayne_v that_o judas_n be_v never_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n dead_a flesh_n and_o without_o spirit_n also_o they_o be_v very_o foolish_a which_o dream_n of_o any_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n whenas_o only_a faith_n be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n a._n therefore_o where_o faith_n want_v soul_n i'faith_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n there_o be_v no_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n 57_o and_o the_o lyvinge_a father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o i_o live_v by_o the_o father_n even_o so_o he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o and_o the_o live_a father_n m._n this_o particle_n also_o serve_v for_o the_o declaration_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o bu_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o doubt_n in_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n he_o do_v yet_o more_o strong_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v namely_o that_o his_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o his_o blood_n drink_v in_o deed_n insomuche_o that_o such_o as_o be_v nourish_v therewith_o shall_v be_v without_o all_o peril_n of_o death_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o pass_v to_o the_o principal_a cause_n because_o the_o principal_a original_n of_o life_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o he_o prevent_v a_o objection_n because_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o detract_v that_o from_o god_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n in_o make_v himself_o the_o cause_n of_o life_n so_o therefore_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o author_n of_o life_n that_o he_o confess_v that_o to_o be_v give_v he_o from_o another_o which_o he_o minister_v to_o other_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r._n the_o father_n be_v life_n in_o deed_n so_o also_o be_o i_o the_o true_a life_n forsomuche_o as_o the_o father_n have_v whole_o imprint_v himself_o in_o i_o i_o will_v not_o reserve_v this_o life_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o i_o to_o myself_o alone_a as_o a_o spiteful_a and_o envious_a person_n but_o i_o will_v also_o communicate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faithful_a that_o everye_o one_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o may_v have_v that_o life_n which_o i_o possess_v through_o the_o father_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o send_v into_o the_o world_n that_o everye_o one_o which_o beléeve_v in_o i_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o all_o those_o good_a thing_n and_o grace_n which_o through_o the_o father_n i_o possess_v by_o nature_n c._n let_v we_o note_n that_o he_o frame_v this_o occasion_n also_o to_o their_o capacity_n with_o who_o he_o
of_o we_o they_o have_v continue_v with_o us._n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o after_o this_o manner_n such_o as_o be_v prove_v may_v be_v know_v 11.19_o i_o cor._n 11.19_o c._n when_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o they_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o christ_n he_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o full_a apostasy_n but_o that_o they_o withdraw_v themselves_o only_o from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o he_o condemn_v they_o as_o apostate_n whereby_o we_o have_v to_o learn_v that_o we_o can_v go_v back_o the_o breadth_n of_o one_o foot_n but_o that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v christ_n 67._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o the_o twelve_o will_v you_o also_o go_v away_o m._n he_o make_v no_o mention_v of_o those_o which_o have_v forsake_v he_o neither_o do_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v any_o whit_n angry_a with_o they_o but_o turn_v himself_o with_o great_a modesty_n to_o the_o rest_n which_o remain_v namely_o to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n say_v unto_o they_o will_n you_o also_o go_v away_o bu_n he_o do_v not_o ask_v this_o question_n as_o though_o he_o be_v ignorant_a what_o they_o think_v or_o what_o they_o will_v do_v but_o he_o demand_v it_o that_o he_o may_v set_v their_o faith_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o a_o ensample_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v follow_v &_o keep_v m._n and_o therewith_o also_o to_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v stay_v none_o of_o his_o disciple_n from_o go_v from_o he_o if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v such_o as_o desire_v to_o go_v from_o he_o because_o this_o apostleship_n require_v such_o as_o come_v not_o compel_v but_o voluntary_o and_o desirous_a of_o heavenly_a grace_n c._n he_o teach_v also_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v draw_v away_o by_o the_o lightness_n and_o inconstancye_n of_o other_o man_n for_o he_o show_v himself_o to_o they_o to_o be_v he_o with_o who_o they_o shall_v abide_v and_o therewithal_o exhort_v they_o not_o to_o join_v themselves_o companion_n to_o apostate_n and_o verylye_o if_o so_o be_v the_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n shake_v fayth_n in_o christ_n never_o shake_v it_o shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n neither_o shall_v it_o shake_v at_o any_o time_n although_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v seem_v to_o go_v together_o and_o the_o cyrcumstaunce_n be_v to_o be_v noated_a that_o christ_n be_v deprive_v almost_o of_o all_o his_o disciple_n retain_v only_o twelve_o by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a example_n everye_o faithful_a man_n be_v teach_v to_o follow_v and_o serve_v god_n although_o he_o have_v never_o a_o fellow_n m._n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o faint_a or_o be_v discourage_v in_o this_o wicked_a world_n where_o very_o few_o be_v find_v which_o cleave_v faithful_o to_o the_o lord_n as_o though_o the_o lord_n have_v the_o less_o care_n of_o the_o faithful_a because_o they_o be_v both_o abject_a and_o few_o in_o number_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o undoubtedlye_o believe_v that_o our_o shepherd_n christ_n jesus_n will_v not_o neglect_v or_o forget_v one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o his_o sheep_n salvation_n multitud_n do_v not_o avayle_v to_o salvation_n for_o as_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o save_v they_o from_o destruction_n so_o the_o paucitye_n or_o smallness_n of_o number_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v nothing_o let_v whereby_o they_o may_v not_o be_v save_v m._n also_o because_o these_o be_v special_o give_v to_o christ_n of_o the_o father_n that_o god_n election_n may_v take_v place_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v abide_v and_o persevere_v with_o he_o unto_o the_o end_n 11.29_o rom._n 11.29_o a_o for_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v such_o that_o he_o can_v never_o repent_v he_o of_o they_o for_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o finish_v the_o good_a work_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o his_o servant_n 68_o then_o simon_n peter_n answer_v he_o lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n then_o simon_n peter_n bu_n simon_n peter_n have_v always_o a_o fervent_a faith_n and_o zeal_n to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o now_o also_o make_v answer_n not_o in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n cry_v out_o with_o great_a courage_n lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o life_n c._n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o they_o all_o except_o judas_n who_o have_v nothing_o that_o be_v sincere_a in_o he_o m._n peter_n may_v have_v say_v simp_o lord_n we_o will_v not_o go_v away_o but_o he_o think_v it_o better_a to_o express_v two_o cause_n of_o tarry_v why_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n will_v abide_v still_o with_o christ_n first_o because_o they_o understande_v and_o perceyve_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v wholesome_a and_o of_o power_n to_o geve_v life_n second_o because_o whether_o soever_o they_o go_v leave_v christ_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v find_v but_o death_n r._n by_o this_o answer_n of_o peter_n we_o plainelye_o see_v the_o same_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o apostle_n write_v say_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o they_o that_o perrishe_v foolishenesse_n 18_o i_o cor._n i_o 18_o but_o unto_o we_o which_o be_v save_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n c._n this_o be_v a_o notable_a commendation_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o minister_v unto_o we_o eternal_a life_n 16_o rom._n i_o 16_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o which_o beléeve_v the_o same_o for_o otherwise_o be_v life_n offer_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n when_o as_o god_n fréelye_o reconcile_v himself_o unto_o we_o 5.19_o 2._o cor._n 5.19_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n to_o us._n hereby_o therefore_o we_o learn_v that_o we_o must_v follow_v our_o master_n christ_n alone_a and_o must_v cleave_v only_o unto_o he_o which_o can_v bring_v to_o we_o everlasting_a life_n bu_n this_o life_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o philosophy_n of_o plato_n or_o of_o aristotle_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o monk_n death_n show_v itself_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o these_o man_n death_n deceit_n and_o destruction_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o fall_v upon_o the_o pate_n of_o such_o man_n as_o be_v careless_a and_o follower_n of_o foolish_a thing_n and_o he_o alone_a escape_v death_n deceit_n and_o destruction_n which_o faithful_o embrace_v christ_n and_o cry_v with_o peter_n lord_n whether_o shall_v we_o go_v we_o will_v abide_v with_o thou_o for_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n in_o thy_o word_n in_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o holy_a gospel_n and_o in_o thyself_o be_v the_o light_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n 69._o and_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o be_v christe_n the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n m._n to_o those_o that_o depart_v the_o lord_n say_v but_o there_o be_v some_o among_o you_o which_o believe_v not_o verse_n three_o score_n and_o four_o peter_n here_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n to_o put_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o unbelief_n from_o himself_o and_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o may_v separate_v himself_o from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o unbeléever_n say_v and_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n in_o these_o word_n peter_n brief_o comprehend_v the_o sum_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o place_v faith_n in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o true_a understanding_n yea_o faith_n itself_o be_v the_o true_a eye_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o straight_o after_o knowledge_n be_v add_v which_o discern_v faith_n from_o erroneous_a and_o false_a opinion_n mind_n faith_n be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o the_o turk_n the_o jew_n and_o the_o papist_n do_v believe_v but_o they_o know_v nothing_o together_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n tie_v together_o but_o faith_n be_v tie_v to_o knowledge_n because_o god_n truth_n be_v certain_o and_o undoubted_o know_v unto_o we_o not_o such_o truth_n as_o man_n knowledge_n be_v able_a to_o apprehend_v but_o such_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v seal_v in_o our_o heart_n m._n therefore_o christian_a faith_n have_v this_o property_n above_o all_o other_o to_o know_v that_o which_o it_o beléeve_v that_o which_o can_v never_o be_v say_v of_o any_o man_n faith_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n because_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o true_a but_o of_o false_a thing_n r._n so_o that_o first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o word_n then_o follow_v knowledge_n and_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n b._n in_o peter_n the_o fervency_n of_o
acceptable_a unto_o god_n m._n here_o we_o see_v that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v profit_v the_o simple_a sort_n to_o instruction_n but_o to_o the_o other_o it_o geve_v matter_n of_o contradiction_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o sign_n and_o miracle_n of_o our_o savioure_n christ_n be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n eye_n to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o sight_n and_o diligent_a consideration_n whereof_o the_o elect_v beléeve_v on_o he_o b._n but_o the_o reprobate_n can_v behold_v nothing_o in_o christ_n but_o base_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n whereat_o they_o be_v offend_v 32._o the_o pharisee_v be_v hear_v that_o the_o people_n murmur_v such_o thing_n concern_v he_o and_o the_o phariseis_n and_o high_a priest_n send_v servant_n to_o take_v he_o m._n the_o more_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n do_v declare_v itself_o to_o the_o people_n the_o more_o the_o malice_n the_o spite_n and_o fury_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr increase_v for_o the_o phariseis_n be_v appoint_v as_o scout_n to_o seek_v all_o occasion_n to_o suppress_v christ_n in_o the_o former_a place_n or_o room_n the_o evangelist_n name_v they_o alone_a after_o he_o join_v with_o they_o the_o high_a priest_n with_o who_o also_o they_o take_v part_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o as_o these_o phariseis_n be_v the_o most_o zealous_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n so_o be_v they_o the_o most_o zealous_a enemy_n of_o all_o other_o unto_o christ_n but_o because_o they_o be_v not_o able_a alone_a to_o oppress_v christ_n they_o refer_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o priesthood_n so_o that_o they_o which_o otherwise_o be_v enemy_n and_o at_o contention_n between_o themselves_o do_v now_o by_o the_o help_n of_o satan_n agree_v together_o and_o conspire_v among_o themselves_o against_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a._n even_o as_o we_o read_v of_o herode_fw-la and_o pilate_n when_o christ_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o to_o be_v judge_v 23.12_o luk._n 23.12_o for_o than_o they_o be_v make_v friend_n between_o who_o before_o there_o be_v hartburn_a and_o grudge_n bu_n and_o it_o great_o gréeve_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o the_o people_n neglect_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o phariseis_n and_o as_o it_o be_v despise_v those_o holy_a man_n follow_v christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v quite_o repugnaunt_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o phariseis_n therefore_o the_o wicked_a jew_n mynd_v to_o stay_v this_o rumore_fw-la concern_v christe_o suborn_v public_a soldier_n which_o may_v bring_v he_o bind_v m._n in_o the_o which_o we_o may_v note_n the_o nature_n of_o wicked_a hypocrite_n at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v christ_n they_o pretend_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n do_v not_o offend_v they_o but_o the_o obscure_n of_o their_o own_o name_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v this_o rumoure_n of_o the_o people_n concern_v christ_n they_o be_v in_o such_o a_o rage_n that_o they_o go_v about_o open_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o he_o so_o impiety_n somwhile_o seek_v to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n privy_o but_o when_o it_o have_v not_o success_n than_o it_o open_o burst_v forth_o so_o saul_n at_o the_o first_o lie_v privy_o in_o wait_n to_o destroy_v david_n i●_n 1._o kin._n i8_n i●_n but_o when_o his_o rage_n be_v more_o hot_a he_o begin_v with_o open_a war_n and_o persecution_n to_o seek_v his_o death_n thus_o also_o be_v hypocrite_n wont_v to_o behave_v themselves_o who_o in_o the_o church_n seek_v not_o christ_n but_o either_o the_o estimation_n of_o their_o own_o name_n either_o gain_n either_o kingdom_n or_o else_o the_o impunity_n of_o offence_n who_o at_o the_o first_o pretend_v the_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o be_v so_o mad_a at_o the_o last_o that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v what_o it_o be_v they_o look_v for_o and_o what_o offend_v they_o c._n moreover_o if_o so_o be_v the_o phariseis_n be_v so_o whoat_n &_o so_o careful_o diligent_a to_o defend_v the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n howmuche_o more_o vehement_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v in_o defend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o madness_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o less_o at_o this_o day_n to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n m._n last_o of_o all_o it_o appear_v how_o prepostourous_a the_o judgement_n and_o how_o perverse_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v the_o multitude_n murmur_n and_o christ_n be_v command_v to_o be_v take_v why_o do_v they_o not_o rather_o instruct_v the_o murmur_a multitude_n in_o the_o truth_n or_o reprehend_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n be_v void_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o upper_a captain_n command_v paul_n to_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o the_o castle_n and_o bid_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v scourge_v and_o examine_v that_o he_o may_v know_v wherefore_o they_o cry_v so_o on_o he_o 22.24_o act_n 22.24_o whereas_o rather_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o impudent_a dog_n which_o continual_o barck_v at_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o christ_n 33._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o they_o yet_o be_o i_o a_o little_a while_n with_o you_o and_o then_o go_v i_o unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n when_o jesus_n know_v what_o they_o privilye_o go_v about_o he_o declare_v unto_o they_o in_o certain_a dark_a sentence_n boath_n that_o their_o conspiracy_n shall_v be_v vain_a and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n of_o his_o own_o free_a will_v offer_v up_o his_o body_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o under_o a_o sertaine_a hide_a and_o dark_a speech_n he_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o dispensation_n that_o he_o shall_v short_o dye_v after_o that_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o so_o to_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o judge_v his_o enemy_n c._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v these_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o asassemblye_o of_o people_n which_o be_v present_a and_o other_o some_o to_o the_o servant_n which_o be_v send_v to_o take_v christ_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n proper_o speak_v to_o his_o enemy_n which_o seek_v his_o destruction_n for_o he_o deryde_v their_o practice_n because_o in_o vain_a they_o take_v they_o in_o hand_n until_o the_o time_n come_v which_o his_o father_n have_v decréeed_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n i_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o be_v intolerable_a and_o therefore_o you_o seek_v with_o all_o your_o might_n and_o main_n to_o destroy_v i_o be_v quiet_a a_o while_n for_o i_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v with_o you_o very_o long_o r._n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v be_v careful_a so_o take_v away_o my_o life_n lest_o i_o shall_v escape_v your_o hand_n for_o see_v i_o be_o so_o welcome_a unto_o you_o as_o smoke_n to_o your_o eye_n and_o thorn_n to_o your_o foot_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o my_o presence_n any_o long_a time_n m._n only_o a_o little_a while_o i_o will_v be_v troublesome_a unto_o you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n i_o will_v not_o flee_v from_o you_o but_o will_v willing_o offer_v myself_o to_o the_o death_n when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o by_o the_o cross_n and_o death_n i_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n over_o all_o creature_n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o neither_o his_o life_n nor_o his_o death_n be_v at_o their_o will_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n appoint_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n ●i_fw-la luk._n 13.3_o ●i_fw-la which_o must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v a._n even_o as_o he_o make_v answer_v to_o certain_a in_o another_o place_n go_v you_o and_o tell_v that_o fox_n behold_v i_o cast_v out_o deville_n and_o heal_v the_o people_n to_o day_n and_o to_o morrow_n and_o the_o third_o day_n i_o shall_v be_v perfect_v i_o go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o death_n can_v destroy_v he_o but_o rather_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v put_v of_o his_o mortal_a body_n he_o will_v declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o glorious_a triumph_n of_o his_o resurrection_n moreover_o hereupon_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v a_o general_a admonition_fw-la for_o christ_n be_v present_o with_o we_o so_o often_o as_o he_o call_v we_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n 2.17_o ephe._n 2.17_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a call_v the_o dissension_n of_o christ_n unto_o us._n if_o so_o be_v we_o will_v take_v
such_o admiration_n and_o estimation_n their_o power_n by_o which_o they_o excel_v in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v not_o afeard_a prowdelye_o to_o contemn_v all_o law_n and_o equity_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n happen_v otherwise_o than_o they_o desire_v than_o they_o will_v confound_v boath_n heaven_n and_o earth_n m._n for_o this_o kind_n of_o tyrant_n tyrant_n tyrant_n as_o they_o desire_v nothing_o else_o than_o to_o extorte_n and_o obtain_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o subject_n whatsoever_o they_o will_v or_o desire_n without_o consideration_n of_o equity_n and_o law_n evenso_fw-la they_o can_v abide_v nothing_o less_o than_o not_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v so_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o command_v shall_v not_o be_v fulfil_v this_o one_o thing_n they_o still_o object_v that_o the_o superior_n must_v be_v obey_v as_o though_o god_n be_v not_o above_o all_o who_o will_v all_o mortal_a man_n ought_v to_o follow_v m._n so_o pharaoh_n object_v to_o the_o midwife_n that_o they_o have_v not_o fulfil_v his_o commandment_n 1.18_o exod._n 1.18_o i0_n joh._n 19_o i0_n a._n pilate_n set_v his_o authority_n before_o christ_n when_o he_o make_v he_o no_o answer_n m._n also_o these_o reverend_a lord_n say_v unto_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o we_o straitelye_o command_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o teach_v in_o this_o name_n 5.28_o act._n 5.28_o and_o behold_v you_o have_v fill_v jerusalem_n with_o your_o doctrine_n 4_o act._n 4_o and_o intend_v to_o bring_v this_o man_n blood_n upon_o us._n c._n the_o high_a priest_n in_o demand_v why_o christ_n be_v not_o bring_v unto_o they_o do_v so_o far_o extol_v their_o power_n that_o they_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o withstand_v their_o commandment_n a._n they_o inquire_v they_o complain_v they_o be_v out_o of_o their_o wit_n nothing_o consider_v the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o protect_v and_o defend_v his_o servant_n m._n euenso_fw-la at_o this_o day_n king_n and_o prince_n in_o their_o edict_n complain_v that_o they_o have_v hitherto_o in_o vain_a set_v forth_o so_o many_o edict_n thank_n be_v to_o god_n which_o so_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o truth_n the_o confusion_n of_o human_a arrogancy_n that_o everye_o where_o yea_o in_o the_o very_a court_n of_o prince_n there_o be_v some_o find_v which_o will_v not_o obey_v wicked_a commandment_n but_o will_n rather_o make_v they_o frustrate_v b_o be_v sure_o persuade_v that_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n 5.29_o act._n 5.29_o 46._o the_o servant_n answer_v never_o man_n speak_v as_o this_o man_n do_v r._n as_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n i●_n pro._n 2i_fw-la i●_n that_o he_o may_v turn_v the_o same_o which_o way_n it_o please_v he_o evenso_fw-la the_o practice_n and_o counsel_n of_o their_o minister_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v they_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n will_v suffer_v they_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o this_o place_n intend_v and_o purpose_v to_o take_v jesus_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n go_v forth_o from_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o when_o they_o intend_v to_o do_v most_o their_o heart_n fail_v they_o insomuch_o that_o they_o can_v not_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o that_o we_o may_v learn_v in_o adversitye_n to_o trust_v unto_o god_n be_v assure_v that_o our_o adversary_n can_v do_v nothing_o unto_o we_o but_o that_o which_o shall_v please_v the_o lord_n and_o which_o shall_v turn_v to_o our_o profit_n so_o he_o preserve_v jacob_n from_o the_o cruelty_n of_o laban_n 31.24_o gen._n 31.24_o c_o in_o like_a manner_n also_o we_o must_v consider_v the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o move_v and_o strike_v not_o only_o the_o godly_a but_o also_o the_o wicked_a these_o man_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v strike_v and_o tame_v only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o repent_v neither_o do_v they_o geve_v that_o due_a and_o lawful_a honour_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o never_o man_n speak_v after_o that_o manner_n why_o do_v not_o the_o divine_a power_n which_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o feel_v so_o affect_v their_o heart_n that_o they_o geve_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o god_n but_o thus_o very_o ought_v that_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v fulfil_v 11.4_o esay_n 11.4_o he_o shall_v beat_v down_o the_o wicked_a with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o that_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n only_o 18.6_o john_n 18.6_o they_o which_o seek_v his_o death_n be_v so_o confound_v that_o they_o fall_v down_o backward_o to_o the_o ground_n even_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v beat_v down_o with_o club_n let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a force_n and_o power_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o do_v also_o terryfye_v the_o wicked_a such_o soldier_n as_o these_o be_v we_o may_v behold_v many_o at_o this_o day_n be_v who_o although_o they_o be_v constrain_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o to_o wonder_n at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v so_o far_o from_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n that_o they_o abide_v still_o in_o the_o tent_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o other_o some_o which_o be_v far_o worse_o be_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v rail_v &_o speak_v evyll_n of_o the_o gospel_n although_o their_o conscience_n bear_v they_o wytnesse_v that_o the_o same_o be_v of_o god_n 47._o then_o answer_v they_o the_o pharisee_n be_v you_o also_o deceyve_v bu_n the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o the_o former_a example_n of_o the_o soldier_n for_o he_o convert_v the_o practice_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o their_o own_o confusion_n and_o subversion_n when_o as_o he_o discourage_v the_o soldier_n with_o the_o only_a word_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr seek_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o can_v to_o subvert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n and_o to_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o credit_n with_o all_o man_n but_o their_o practice_n and_o counsel_n have_v contrary_a success_n they_o do_v confirm_v and_o set_v forth_o his_o authority_n when_o they_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o extinguish_v the_o same_o nevertheless_o their_o impiety_n increase_v more_o and_o more_o so_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o soldier_n but_o rather_o more_o inflame_v with_o anger_n hatred_n and_o pride_n do_v exclaim_v say_v be_v you_o also_o deceyve_v m._n here_o let_v we_o note_n the_o lot_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n the_o force_n and_o power_n seduce_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o same_o and_o in_o such_o wise_n that_o they_o which_o be_v not_o send_v to_o hear_v but_o to_o take_v christ_n shall_v be_v deceyve_v by_o hear_v so_o at_o this_o day_n many_o papist_n be_v very_o wary_a and_o circumspect_a that_o they_o off_o hear_v not_o the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o say_v they_o it_o be_v so_o pernicious_a and_o ready_a to_o seduce_v that_o if_o thou_o hear_v the_o same_o but_o once_o thou_o be_v by_o and_o by_o seduce_v a._n whereupon_o also_o the_o persecutor_n of_o christ_n command_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v carry_v to_o death_n to_o have_v their_o tongue_n cut_v out_o of_o their_o head_n lest_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flame_a fire_n they_o shall_v win_v some_o by_o the_o open_a confession_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o they_o be_v so_o angry_a at_o their_o tongue_n see_v they_o can_v not_o resist_v they_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o assure_a promise_n of_o christ_n 21.15_o luk._n 21.15_o i_o will_v geve_v unto_o you_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n the_o which_o all_o your_o enemy_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v but_o the_o foolish_a and_o mad_a man_n be_v afraid_a of_o themselves_o in_o vain_a m._n for_o if_o the_o wicked_a man_n hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n a_o hundred_o time_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v nay_o if_o he_o come_v without_o a_o malicious_a heart_n against_o the_o same_o and_o come_v not_o with_o a_o mind_n to_o hear_v and_o to_o be_v teach_v he_o shall_v return_v again_o as_o he_o come_v this_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o the_o wicked_a go_v about_o to_o bear_v man_n in_o hand_n that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o erroure_n a._n but_o so_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n do_v
themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n wrath_n do_v we_o not_o see_v the_o same_o fury_n in_o many_o at_o this_o day_n who_o conscience_n have_v no_o sense_n and_o feel_n at_o all_o do_v scoff_n and_o deride_v all_o that_o they_o hear_v speak_v of_o the_o horrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n 23_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o be_v from_o beneath_o i_o be_o from_o above_o you_o be_v of_o this_o world_n i_o be_o not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o m._n christ_n do_v so_o answer_v unto_o their_o secréete_n whisper_v that_o he_o declare_v boath_n wherefore_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o place_n whether_o he_o be_v go_v and_o also_o wherefore_o he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v dye_v in_o their_o sin_n you_o say_v he_o be_v from_o beneath_o c._n because_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v teach_v he_o only_o mind_v short_o and_o sharp_o to_o reprehend_v they_o pronounce_v in_o this_o place_n that_o they_o do_v not_o understande_v his_o doctrine_n because_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o cause_n of_o your_o error_n and_o blindness_n be_v for_o that_o you_o be_v quite_o void_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v you_o be_v earthly_a and_o carnal_a and_o savour_v whole_o of_o this_o world_n but_o i_o be_o from_o above_o and_o be_o not_o of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o teach_v spiritual_a heavenly_a and_o not_o worldly_a thing_n except_o therefore_o as_o new_a bear_v you_o change_v your_o mind_n you_o shall_v never_o understande_v any_o whit_n of_o my_o philosophy_n c._n for_o under_o these_o word_n world_n and_o from_o beneathe_n he_o comprehend_v all_o that_o man_n have_v vy_z nature_n for_o sin_n death_n affliction_n glory_n pomp_n riches_n power_n and_o such_o like_a carnal_a thing_n be_v from_o beneathe_n and_o of_o this_o world_n c._n and_o thus_o he_o put_v discrepaunce_n and_o difference_n between_o his_o gospel_n and_o the_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n of_o man_n mind_n because_o the_o gospel_n be_v heavenlye_a wisdom_n and_o our_o mind_n stay_v itself_o upon_o the_o earth_n so_o that_o noane_n shall_v be_v a_o meet_a disciple_n for_o christ_n but_o such_o as_o he_o have_v conform_v by_o his_o spyrite_n and_o hereuppon_o it_o come_v that_o faith_n be_v so_o seldom_o find_v in_o the_o world_n because_o natural_o all_o mankind_n be_v alienate_v from_o christ_n world_n i'faith_o syldom_o find_v in_o the_o world_n except_o those_o who_o he_o lift_v up_o by_o special_a grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spyrite_n r._n for_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o righteousness_n to_o faith_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o eternal_a felicity_n by_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n m._n moreover_o christ_n do_v not_o deny_v in_o himself_o the_o nativitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o the_o communion_n and_o partetaking_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o corruption_n which_o come_v through_o sin_n &_o the_o sugiestion_n of_o satan_n in_o this_o sense_n he_o deny_v his_o apostle_n to_o be_v of_o this_o world_n because_o he_o exempt_v they_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spyrite_n from_o the_o spot_v and_o pollusion_n of_o this_o world_n a._n in_o like_a manner_n all_o the_o godly_a though_o they_o be_v in_o this_o world_n 19_o joh._n i5_n 19_o mix_v with_o wicked_a and_o ungodlye_a man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v of_o this_o world_n because_o god_n have_v take_v they_o out_o of_o this_o present_a wicked_a world_n 3.20_o phili._n 3.20_o and_o their_o conversation_n be_v heavenly_a 24._o i_o say_v therefore_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v dye_v in_o your_o sin_n for_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o that_o i_o be_o he_o you_o shall_v dye_v in_o your_o sin_n i_o say_v therefore_o unto_o you_o m._n the_o join_v together_o of_o these_o sentence_n do_v manifestlye_o declare_v that_o so_o many_o as_o be_v of_o this_o world_n be_v subject_a unto_o death_n for_o he_o say_v not_o simp_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v dye_v but_o i_o say_v therefore_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v dye_v wherefore_o because_o you_o be_v of_o this_o world_n for_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o declaration_n do_v before_o so_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o world_n be_v subject_a to_o damnation_n say_v when_o we_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v correct_v i2_n 1._o co._n 11_o i2_n least_o we_o shall_v be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n that_o you_o shall_v die_v in_o your_o sin_n c._n now_o he_o put_v the_o plural_a number_n sin_n whereas_o he_o use_v before_o the_o syngule_a number_n sin_n but_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n save_v that_o in_o the_o former_a place_n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o note_n that_o unbeléefe_n be_v the_o well_o spring_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o evelles_fw-la not_o because_o incredulity_n only_o be_v sin_n or_o death_n because_o the_o same_o alone_a make_v we_o guilty_a before_o god_n of_o eternal_a death_n but_o because_o it_o do_v draw_v we_o away_o from_o christ_n and_o do_v deprive_v we_o of_o his_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o seek_v for_o deliveraunce_n from_o all_o our_o sin_n in_o that_o therefore_o the_o jew_n through_o obstinate_a malice_n do_v reject_v the_o medicine_n they_o geve_v unto_o themselves_o a_o mortal_a wound_n and_o hereuppon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o heap_v on_o sin_n upon_o another_o m._n furthermore_o by_o this_o place_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o death_n be_v due_a unto_o sin_n as_o the_o scripture_n in_o diverse_a place_n teach_v i5_n death_n reward_n of_o sin_n rom._n 6.22_o 1._o cor_fw-la i5_n we_o may_v also_o gather_v that_o our_o destruction_n come_v of_o our_o own_o sin_n and_o not_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n it_o may_v be_v that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n and_o so_o also_o of_o their_o punishment_n but_o he_o which_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n and_o do_v not_o dot_v defile_v himself_o with_o other_o man_n sin_n be_v also_o free_a from_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n 6.23_o rom._n 6.23_o that_o be_v to_o say_v death_n for_o the_o soul_n which_o have_v sin_v shall_v dye_v 4_o e●ec_n i8_n 4_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o father_n the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o son_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v be_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o ungodly_a upon_o they_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o that_o i_o be_o he_o what_o he_o have_v add_v nothing_o and_o because_o he_o have_v add_v nothing_o it_o be_v much_o which_o he_o have_v commend_v for_o they_o look_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v declare_v what_o he_o be_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o show_v the_o same_o c._n there_o be_v therefore_o in_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n a_o great_a emphacis_fw-la and_o force_n because_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v notwithstanding_o the_o sum_n and_o principal_a point_n be_v the_o repair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o be_v the_o light_n of_o faith_n whereof_o due_o spring_v righteousness_n and_o newenesse_n of_o life_n some_o of_o the_o father_n have_v draw_v amiss_o this_o thing_n to_o the_o divine_a essence_n of_o christ_n and_o do_v join_v that_o with_o he_o which_o be_v wrighten_a in_o exodus_fw-la i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o 3_o exod._n 3_o when_o as_o he_o speak_v hear_v of_o the_o duty_n which_o he_o owe_v towards_o us._n this_o sentence_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a for_o man_n do_v never_o sufficient_o consider_v the_o evelles_fw-la in_o the_o which_o they_o be_v overwhelm_v and_o although_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o destruction_n yet_o notwithstanding_o neglect_v christ_n they_o seek_v for_o vain_a remedy_n wherefore_o we_o must_v here_o note_n that_o until_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o deliverer_n do_v reveal_v itself_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n do_v abound_v 25._o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o who_o be_v thou_o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o even_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n that_o i_o say_v to_o you_o from_o the_o beginning_n who_o be_v thou_o bu_n bu_n wonderful_a liberty_n of_o question_v or_o rather_o carnal_a licence_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o wonderful_a do_v the_o patience_n and_o long_o suffer_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n appear_v in_o all_o these_o thing_n
and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v find_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n pasture_n faith_n find_v pasture_n do_v hunger_n after_o righteousness_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o affliction_n do_v hunger_n after_o consolation_n if_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o death_n do_v hunger_n after_o life_n he_o shall_v find_v pasture_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v righteousness_n consolation_n and_o life_n m._n he_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v at_o the_o full_a a._n this_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o express_v at_o a_o neither_o time_n say_v 6.35_o joh._n 6.35_o he_o which_o come_v unto_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o thirst_v bu_n read_v also_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o psalm_n 10._o a_o thief_n come_v not_o but_o for_o to_o steal_v kill_v and_o to_o destroy_v i_o be_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o more_o abundant_o by_o a_o sertaine_a antithesis_fw-la christ_n compare_v his_o word_n and_o gospel_n with_o false_a doctrine_n c._n and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v pull_v we_o by_o the_o ear_n lest_o fall_v a_o sleep_n the_o minister_n of_o satan_n do_v circumvent_v we_o before_o we_o be_v aware_a for_o our_o overmuch_o security_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o be_v naked_a on_o every_o side_n we_o be_v in_o the_o danger_n of_o false_a doctrine_n because_o we_o be_v not_o circumspect_a and_o fearful_a enough_o of_o so_o many_o false_a teacher_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n therefore_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n affirm_v that_o false_a teacher_n how_o smooth_o soever_o they_o insinuate_v themselves_o do_v always_o bring_v with_o they_o deadly_a poison_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o careful_a to_o drive_v they_o away_o a._n the_o like_a admonition_n the_o apostle_n paul_n geve_v we_o say_v take_v heed_n that_o no_o man_n spoil_v you_o through_o vain_a philosophy_n again_o he_o say_v now_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n mark_v they_o which_o cause_n division_n and_o geve_v occasion_n of_o evell_a i7_n rom._n 6_o i7_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v and_o avoid_v they_o for_o they_o that_o be_v such_o serve_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o own_o belly_n and_o with_o sweet_a and_o flatter_a word_n deceive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o innocent_n also_o he_o say_v for_o such_o false_a aposteles_a be_v deceitful_a worker_n transform_v into_o the_o aposteles_a of_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o satan_n himself_o be_v transform_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n 11.13_o 2_z cor_n 11.13_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o great_a thing_n though_o his_o minister_n be_v transform_v as_o the_o miinister_n of_o righteousenesse_n who_o end_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o work_n bu_n these_o thing_n be_v apply_v unto_o those_o which_o seek_v not_o after_o christ_n and_o enter_v not_o in_o by_o the_o door_n these_o very_o rob_v god_n and_o christ_n of_o his_o honour_n for_o when_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v give_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o church_n whereby_o they_o shall_v have_v learn_v that_o all_o fullness_n be_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n to_o be_v wisdom_n righteousenes_n sanctification_n and_o redemtion_n they_o in_o steed_n of_o these_o do_v set_v before_o man_n 13_o 1._o cor._n i_o 13_o human_a invention_n the_o decréese_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o church_n whereby_o they_o may_v learn_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o merit_n that_o they_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n by_o monastical_a vow_n by_o the_o intercession_n and_o worship_v of_o saint_n by_o the_o cellebration_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o indulgencis_n and_o pardon_n which_o they_o sell_v for_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n defraud_v and_o spoil_v the_o ●oore_a r._n they_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o withal_o they_o add_v their_o own_o invention_n concern_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o work_n the_o merit_n of_o saint_n the_o pain_n of_o purgatorye_n and_o concern_v the_o toy_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o which_o they_o deceyve_v seduce_v and_o at_o the_o last_o slay_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n which_o hear_v they_o bu_n for_o they_o themselves_o kill_v man_n soul_n as_o when_o they_o preach_v salvation_n where_o no_o salvation_n be_v life_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n grace_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wrath_n kill_n the_o sincere_a confessor_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n and_o above_o all_o thing_n they_o take_v from_o the_o sheep_n their_o lawful_a liberty_n and_o do_v oppress_v they_o with_o unjust_a and_o cruel_a law_n show_v themselves_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v tyrant_n and_o not_o shéephearde_n against_o such_o sheapheardes_n the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n say_v 5_o ezec_fw-la 34.2_o zach_n twelve_o 5_o woe_n unto_o the_o shepherd_n of_o israel_n that_o feed_v themselves_o shall_v not_o the_o shepherd_n feed_v the_o flock_n you_o eat_v the_o fat_a and_o clothe_v you_o with_o the_o will_v you_o kill_v they_o that_o be_v feed_v but_o you_o feed_v not_o the_o sheep_n now_o let_v all_o those_o which_o at_o this_o day_n glory_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o pastor_n try_v and_o examine_v their_o manner_n disposition_n word_n and_o deed_n and_o let_v they_o judge_v hereby_o whether_o they_o be_v shéephearde_n or_o théeve_n and_o murderer_n i_o be_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n bu_n this_o he_o add_v to_o the_o word_n go_v before_o by_o a_o antithesis_n or_o comparison_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o come_v that_o the_o sheep_n may_v have_v life_n and_o the_o same_o abundant_o and_o eternal_o and_o by_o life_n he_o understand_v all_o those_o benefit_n which_o the_o faith_n and_o diligence_n of_o shepherd_n geve_v unto_o the_o sheep_n but_o especial_o everlasting_a life_n which_o christ_n jesus_n the_o prince_n of_o sheaphearde_n only_o geve_v 22._o ezec_fw-la 34_o i6_n 22._o i_o will_v feed_v my_o sheep_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v seek_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o bring_v again_o that_o which_o be_v drive_v away_o and_o will_v bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v and_o will_v strengthen_v the_o weak_a c._n this_o christ_n appli_v to_o himself_o and_o geve_v we_o also_o to_o understande_v that_o they_o only_o be_v give_v over_o for_o a_o pray_v unto_o théeve_n and_o wolf_n which_o will_v not_o be_v with_o in_o the_o reach_n and_o compass_v of_o his_o shéepehooke_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o the_o more_o he_o promise_v life_n yea_o everlasting_a life_n to_o those_o which_o will_v not_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o and_o very_o the_o more_o that_o a_o man_n profit_v in_o the_o faith_n the_o more_o never_o he_o come_v to_o the_o fullness_n of_o life_n because_o the_o spirit_n grow_v in_o he_o which_o be_v life_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v this_o more_o ample_a life_n to_o that_o which_o immediate_o follow_v this_o present_a life_n when_o death_n have_v neither_o place_n nor_o power_n 11._o i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n a_o good_a shepherd_n geve_v his_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n bu_n now_o the_o lord_n go_v forward_o to_o explicate_v the_o rest_n also_o of_o the_o propound_a parable_n he_o have_v say_v he_o which_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o straight_o after_o that_o he_o say_v i_o come_v that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o more_o abundant_o and_o now_o more_o plain_o he_o expound_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o say_v i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n which_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n ▪_o and_o which_o do_v all_o thing_n lawful_o and_o not_o by_o subtlety_n i_o teach_v that_o truth_n and_o salvation_n ought_v to_o be_v seek_v there_o where_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o i_o which_o be_o the_o true_a lively_a and_o most_o mighty_a son_n of_o god_n m_o for_o i_o be_o that_o good_a shephearde_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n have_v prophesy_v in_o diverse_a place_n 34.23_o esay_n 40.11_o eze._n 34.23_o christ_n therefore_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o shepherd_n and_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o only_a shepherd_n as_o in_o very_a deed_n this_o honour_n and_o title_n belong_v unto_o none_o but_o to_o he_o for_o so_o many_o as_o be_v faithful_a pastoure_n of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o he_o endu_v they_o with_o necessary_a gift_n govern_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n and_o work_v in_o they_o the_o which_o let_v not_o but_o that_o he_o
to_o he_o of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o whole_a cause_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o god_n as_o to_o himself_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v pull_v the_o sheep_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o hand_n be_v my_o father_n hand_n and_o my_o sheep_n be_v my_o father_n sheep_n no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o from_o i_o because_o no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n c._n a_o notable_a place_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a be_v no_o less_o sure_a than_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v invincible_a hereby_o also_o we_o gather_v how_o vain_a the_o trust_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v which_o rest_v upon_o free_a will_n upon_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n christ_n have_v far_o otherwise_o teach_v those_o that_o be_v he_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v in_o this_o world_n as_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o wood_n and_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o théeve_n and_o furthermore_o that_o they_o be_v naked_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o prey_n and_o carry_v in_o their_o own_o bosom_n the_o dagger_n and_o cause_n of_o death_n that_o bear_v themselves_o bold_a upon_o the_o only_a custody_n and_o defence_n of_o god_n they_o may_v walk_v secure_o without_o fear_n 30._o and_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o do_v nothing_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o have_v nothing_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o i_o give_v nothing_o and_o i_o be_o nothing_o of_o myself_o without_o my_o father_n all_o that_o be_v i_o be_v he_o and_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v or_o do_v it_o be_v i_o and_o he_o work_v the_o same_o by_o i_o we_o do_v all_o one_o thing_n neither_o be_v we_o divide_v but_o christ_n do_v not_o dispute_v here_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o of_o the_o consent_n and_o agreement_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o father_n as_o that_o whatsoever_o christ_n do_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o father_n power_n howbeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v refer_v this_o place_n to_o the_o divine_a substance_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o heretic_n 31._o then_o the_o jew_n take_v uppe_o stone_n again_o to_o stone_n he_o withal_o c._n as_o piety_n be_v zealous_a in_o defend_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v moderate_a so_o infidelity_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o madness_n and_o the_o devil_n do_v so_o provoke_v the_o wicked_a that_o they_o desire_v and_o seek_v nothing_o but_o murder_n bu_n the_o jew_n be_v move_v and_o stir_v up_o with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n take_v up_o stone_n as_o we_o read_v that_o they_o do_v at_o a_o neither_o time_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n go_v before_o this_o success_n show_v with_o what_o mind_n they_o question_v with_o christ_n for_o a_o manifest_a confession_n of_o the_o which_o they_o feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v very_o desirous_a make_v they_o by_o and_o by_o to_o fall_v into_o outrageous_a madness_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o when_o they_o be_v thus_o violent_o carry_v to_o oppress_v christ_n they_o pretend_v the_o colour_n and_o cloak_n of_o judgement_n 24.16_o deu._n i3_n 5_o levi_n 24.16_o as_o though_o they_o do_v the_o thing_n according_a to_o form_n of_o law_n where_o god_n command_v false_a prophet_n to_o be_v stoan_v to_o death_n 32._o jesus_n answer_v they_o many_o good_a work_n have_v i_o show_v you_o from_o my_o father_n for_o which_o of_o they_o do_v you_o stone_n i_o m._n to_o the_o end_n christ_n may_v reprehande_o their_o unspeakable_a malice_n and_o madness_n he_o do_v not_o only_o object_v his_o innocencye_n but_o also_o which_o be_v more_o his_o notable_a and_o wonderful_a beneficience_n show_v towards_o they_o c._n and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v they_o to_o have_v any_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v so_o rage_v but_o do_v also_o accuse_v they_o of_o ingratitude_n for_o that_o they_o so_o unthankefullye_o requight_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v well_o deserve_v at_o their_o hand_n for_o one_o or_o two_o work_n sake_n but_o say_v that_o he_o have_v be_v benefyciall_a unto_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n what_o cause_n have_v you_o against_o i_o whereby_o i_o may_v seem_v worthy_a unto_o you_o to_o be_v stoan_v to_o death_n bu_n malefactor_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v punish_v and_o stoan_v to_o death_n but_o as_o for_o i_o what_o evell_a have_v i_o do_v what_o have_v i_o deserve_v which_o have_v hurt_v no_o man_n but_o have_v show_v a_o innumerable_a sort_n of_o benefit_n to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o and_o the_o same_o from_o my_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o my_o devyne_a power_n c._n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n be_v the_o authoure_n of_o those_o work_n and_o this_o interrogation_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n to_o prick_v their_o conscience_n then_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v by_o a_o simple_a affirmative_a to_o show_v good_a work_n be_v a_o hebrew_n phrase_n in_o steed_n of_o to_o do_v good_a work_v the_o which_o phrase_n be_v often_o time_n use_v in_o the_o holy_a scriture_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v many_o say_v who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a 20_o psal_n 4.7_o psal_n 60_o 5_o psal_n 71_o 20_o also_o thou_o haste_v show_v thy_o people_n hard_a thing_n again_o thou_o have_v show_v i_o great_a trouble_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v many_o good_a work_n already_o by_o which_o he_o have_v bring_v health_n unto_o man_n and_o have_v thereby_o show_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v look_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n namely_o nothing_o but_o assure_a salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n this_o he_o exhort_v the_o jew_n to_o believe_v and_o declare_v that_o all_o his_o work_n belong_v to_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v assure_o believe_v he_o and_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o so_o stir_v they_o be_v nothing_o but_o good_a and_o wholesome_a work_n right_o therefore_o he_o déemaund_v of_o they_o for_o which_o of_o his_o good_a work_n they_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n he_o m._n it_o be_v extreme_a ingratitude_n and_o wickedness_n to_o render_v evell_a for_o so_o many_o benefit_n and_o to_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v the_o benefactoure_n i2_n psal_n 35_o i2_n of_o such_o unthankful_a person_n david_n complain_v say_v they_o render_v i_o evell_a for_o good_a therefore_o if_o so_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n evell_a shall_v be_v render_v to_o any_o man_n for_o good_a let_v he_o comfort_v himself_o with_o the_o lot_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n 33._o the_o jew_n answer_v he_o say_v for_o thy_o good_a work_n sake_n we_o stone_n thou_o not_o but_o for_o thy_o blasphemy_n and_o because_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n make_v thyself_o god_n r._n the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n will_v not_o seem_v unjust_o and_o wicked_o to_o persecute_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n wherefore_o they_o fain_a and_o imagine_v cause_n against_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o same_o which_o they_o think_v worthy_a of_o punishment_n the_o which_o it_o pretend_v to_o cloak_n the_o envy_n against_o christ_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n c._n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o brazen_a wall_n by_o which_o we_o may_v strong_o repel_v the_o reproach_n and_o sclaunder_n with_o the_o which_o we_o be_v misereport_v of_o for_o how_o soever_o they_o colour_n &_o cloak_n their_o malice_n &_o what_o ignominy_n soever_o they_o bring_v unto_o we_o for_o a_o time_n if_o we_o fight_v for_o god_n cause_v he_o will_v not_o deny_v himself_o but_o will_v defend_v and_o maintain_v his_o truth_n r._n christ_n be_v accuse_v of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o of_o sedition_n against_o sesar_n the_o prophet_n be_v accuse_v of_o defection_n from_o the_o law_n and_o of_o seduce_v the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n be_v accuse_v partly_o of_o sedition_n and_o partly_o of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o so_o great_a wickedness_n be_v spread_v abroad_o of_o the_o godly_a before_o the_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o kill_v they_o he_o think_v that_o he_o do_v unto_o god_n good_a service_n as_o shall_v be_v say_v in_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n follow_v m._n here_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o good_a work_n for_o they_o say_v not_o thy_o work_n be_v evil_a but_o they_o acknoweledg_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v i_o have_v show_v unto_o you_o many_o good_a
answer_n to_o take_v away_o all_o care_n from_o his_o disciple_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v gréeve_v to_o see_v he_o so_o secure_a and_o careless_a in_o the_o peril_n of_o his_o friend_n he_o deny_v this_o disease_n to_o be_v deadelye_o but_o rather_o affirm_v the_o same_o to_o be_v a_o mean_a to_o set_v forth_o his_o glory_n m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v lazarus_n be_v not_o fall_v into_o this_o sickness_n to_o dye_v of_o the_o same_o as_o commenlye_o it_o happen_v to_o other_o but_o this_o infirmitye_n or_o sykenesse_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o secret_a purpose_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n to_o this_o end_n that_o god_n may_v thereby_o be_v glorify_v occasyon_n be_v thereby_o offer_v to_o his_o son_n by_o the_o same_o to_o declare_v his_o power_n and_o to_o magnify_v his_o name_n c._n and_o although_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o shortelye_o after_o christ_n restore_v he_o to_o life_n he_o have_v respect_n to_o this_o ishue_v and_o success_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sycknesse_n unto_o death_n m._n for_o lazarus_n within_o two_o day_n after_o dye_v of_o the_o same_o syckenesse_n but_o not_o to_o sleep_v in_o death_n with_o other_o dead_a body_n until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o life_n by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o may_v by_o his_o death_n minister_v occasyon_n to_o glorify_v he_o therefore_o the_o lord_n have_v more_o respect_n unto_o the_o consideration_n and_o cause_n of_o death_n then_o to_o the_o death_n itself_o and_o therefore_o more_o truelye_o he_o ascribe_v this_o sickness_n to_o the_o cause_n of_o death_n which_o make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o than_o to_o death_n itself_o c._n moreover_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n proper_o noat_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o be_v join_v with_o his_o office_n for_o we_o know_v that_o when_o the_o reprobate_n perish_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v no_o less_o shine_n in_o their_o death_n then_o in_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o by_o my_o power_n whereby_o i_o shall_v be_v glorify_v for_o by_o that_o work_n many_o shall_v gather_v that_o i_o be_o the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n the_o life_n and_o the_o quickener_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v for_o it_o follow_v toward_o the_o end_n of_o the_o miracle_n 45_o verse_n 45_o many_o therefore_o of_o the_o jew_n which_o come_v to_o marry_o and_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n which_o jesus_n have_v do_v believe_v in_o he_o c._n by_o this_o place_n we_o gather_v that_o god_n will_v be_v so_o know_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n that_o what_o honour_n soever_o god_n requier_v to_o be_v give_v to_o himself_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o his_o son_n bu_n whereupon_o christ_n say_v the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n 5.23_o joh._n 5.23_o that_o all_o may_v honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n he_o which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v he_o c._n wherefore_o the_o turk_n and_o jew_n be_v contumeliouse_a unto_o christ_n in_o vain_a profess_v themselves_o to_o honour_n god_n nay_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o go_v about_o to_o banish_v god_n from_o they_o 5._o jesus_n love_v martha_n and_o her_o sister_n and_o lazarus_n m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v because_o of_o the_o word_n of_o mary_n and_o martha_n which_o they_o tell_v by_o message_n unto_o the_o lord_n say_v lord_n behold_v he_o who_o thou_o love_v be_v sick_a jesus_n love_v not_o only_a lazarus_n but_o also_o his_o sister_n bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o this_o houshoulde_n and_o family_n which_o be_v godly_a dispose_v m._n for_o christ_n love_v all_o man_n in_o that_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o savioure_n and_o redeemer_n of_o all_o man_n and_o not_o only_o those_o which_o be_v then_o live_v and_o which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o but_o those_o also_o which_o shall_v be_v upon_o the_o earth_n unto_o the_o world_n end_n we_o read_v not_o that_o paul_n have_v any_o familiarity_n with_o christ_n in_o this_o world_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o say_v nevertheless_o i_o live_v 2.26_o gala_n 2.26_o yet_o now_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n which_o i_o now_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o and_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n live_v among_o man_n he_o be_v lead_v by_o humane_a affection_n so_o he_o be_v say_v here_o to_o love_v this_o lazarus_n martha_n and_o mary_n and_o so_o also_o we_o read_v that_o he_o love_v john_n the_o apostle_n i4_n john_n i5_n i4_n and_o so_o no_o doubt_n he_o love_v all_o his_o aposte_n and_o call_v they_o his_o friend_n 6._o when_o he_o have_v hear_v therefore_o that_o he_o be_v sick_a he_o abide_v two_o day_n still_o in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o he_o be_v c._n these_o word_n seem_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o go_v before_o that_o christ_n shall_v abide_v two_o day_n on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o jordan_n as_o neglect_v the_o life_n of_o lazarus_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v say_v to_o love_v he_o and_o his_o sister_n for_o see_v love_n cause_v care_n he_o shall_v have_v make_v haste_n without_o delay_n m._n but_o this_o delay_n nether_a hurt_n lazarus_n nor_o yet_o be_v offensive_a to_o the_o law_n of_o love_n and_o frenship_n but_o 〈◊〉_d profyte_v he_o very_o much_o agree_v with_o friendship_n and_o amity_n and_o also_o serve_v great_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n lazarus_n be_v his_o friend_n but_o more_o fren_z be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n c._n therefore_o see_v christ_n be_v the_o only_a mirror_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o his_o delay_n not_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o present_a state_n of_o thing_n be_v entreat_v he_o often_o time_n difer_v his_o help_n either_o to_o make_v we_o more_o fervent_a in_o prayer_n or_o else_o to_o excercise_n our_o patience_n and_o obedience_n bu_n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o think_v much_o if_o so_o be_v the_o lover_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o godliness_n be_v afflict_v with_o the_o calamity_n of_o this_o world_n god_n fare_v as_o though_o he_o care_v not_o for_o the_o same_o i0_n gen_n 4_o i0_n either_o because_o so_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o which_o suffer_v or_o else_o because_o it_o so_o serve_v for_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o his_o glory_n b._n so_o he_o leave_v abel_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o brother_n but_o after_o his_o death_n his_o blood_n cry_v for_o vengeance_n 39.20_o gen_n 39.20_o so_o he_o leave_v joseph_n a_o long_a time_n in_o the_o dungeon_n of_o the_o prison_n but_o afterward_o he_o advance_v he_o to_o honour_n so_o he_o leave_v the_o israelite_n a_o long_a time_n in_o cruel_a bondage_n who_o notwithstanding_o at_o the_o length_n he_o deliver_v with_o a_o mighty_a hand_n and_o outstretch_v arm_n c._n let_v the_o faithful_a therefore_o so_o crave_v help_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o they_o learn_v to_o suspend_v their_o desire_n if_o so_o be_v at_o any_o time_n he_o be_v more_o slow_a to_o help_v and_o deliver_v then_o necessity_n require_v for_o howsoever_o he_o stay_v he_o sleep_v not_o neither_o be_v he_o unmindful_a of_o those_o that_o be_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o this_o that_o he_o will_v all_o who_o he_o love_v to_o be_v save_v 7._o then_o say_v he_o after_o that_o to_o his_o disciple_n let_v we_o go_v into_o jewrye_n again_o m._n the_o disciple_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o weak_a stand_v great_o in_o fear_n of_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n therefore_o christ_n think_v good_a to_o make_v they_o strong_a against_o they_o take_v their_o journey_n for_o he_o know_v that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v so_o much_o as_o jewry_n speak_v of_o but_o he_o may_v have_v go_v into_o jewry_n without_o they_o and_o never_o have_v tell_v they_o of_o the_o matter_n yet_o he_o neither_o will_v return_v into_o jewrye_n without_o they_o nor_o yet_o leave_v their_o mind_n unprepared_a for_o so_o perilous_a a_o journey_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v let_v we_o go_v into_o jury_n again_o c._n by_o which_o word_n also_o be_v declare_v that_o he_o have_v a_o care_n for_o lazarus_n when_o his_o disciple_n think_v that_o he_o have_v forget_v he_o or_o at_o lest_o that_o he_o make_v less_o account_n of_o the_o life_n of_o lazarus_n than_o he_o do_v of_o other_o matter_n m._n
jesus_n therefore_o see_v she_o weep_v and_o the_o jew_n also_o weep_v which_o come_v with_o she_o he_o groan_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v trouble_v in_o himself_o bu_n the_o lord_n answer_v nothing_o to_o the_o complaint_n of_o mary_n for_o he_o have_v reason_v the_o matter_n sufficient_o with_o martha_n to_o who_o he_o have_v promise_v notable_a thing_n as_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o lazarus_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n again_o wherefore_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n be_v now_o come_v not_o to_o dispute_v far_o of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v b._n furthermore_o when_o he_o see_v marye_n altogether_o in_o morning_n and_o the_o jew_n to_o mourn_v and_o weep_v with_o she_o also_o the_o present_a weep_a so_o move_v he_o that_o he_o himself_o weep_v also_o b._n thus_o he_o do_v sorrow_n with_o those_o that_o sorrow_v and_o declare_v himself_o both_o to_o be_v a_o very_a man_n and_o also_o endue_v with_o true_a love_n the_o cause_n of_o such_o affection_n the_o evangelist_n express_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o weep_v when_o he_o see_v mary_n &_o the_o rest_n weep_v howbeit_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o have_v a_o far_a respect_n name_o to_o the_o common_a misery_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o remember_v the_o charge_n commit_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n and_o wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n name_o that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o all_o evyll_n this_o as_o he_o do_v in_o very_a deed_n so_o he_o will_v show_v that_o he_o do_v the_o same_o with_o the_o serious_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n therefore_o he_o go_v about_o to_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n mankind_n christ_n lament_v the_o misery_n of_o mankind_n testify_v with_o groan_v in_o the_o spirit_n with_o grief_n and_o with_o tear_n that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o affect_v and_o grieve_v for_o our_o misery_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v in_o the_o same_o himself_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n 4._o heb._n 4._o will_v also_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o affection_n that_o he_o may_v differre_fw-la nothing_o from_o his_o brethren_n but_o in_o sin_n only_o and_o herein_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v our_o brother_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o mediator_n as_o know_v easy_o how_o to_o have_v compassion_n upon_o our_o infirmity_n he_o himself_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o same_o in_o his_o flesh_n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v question_v see_v the_o passion_n of_o man_n be_v vicious_a it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o they_o with_o we_o we_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o christ_n and_o us._n aunsware_v aunsware_v for_o therefore_o our_o affection_n be_v vicious_a because_o they_o exceed_v and_o have_v no_o measure_n but_o the_o affection_n in_o christ_n because_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n and_o do_v not_o exceed_v be_v without_o blame_n or_o fault_n for_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o compare_v his_o passion_n with_o we_o thou_o shall_v find_v so_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o as_o there_o be_v between_o fair_a spring_a water_n and_o foul_a dyrtye_n puddle_n christ_n great_o trouble_v himself_o and_o be_v much_o move_v but_o so_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o keep_v he_o self_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o father_n will_n bu_n to_o be_v short_a when_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o jesus_n groan_v in_o his_o spirit_n he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v so_o move_v in_o the_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n that_o for_o the_o time_n he_o can_v not_o speak_v this_o motion_n always_o go_v before_o tear_n in_o such_o as_o be_v vehement_o affect_v for_o the_o like_a also_o we_o read_v of_o joseph_n 43.30_o ge._n 43.30_o who_o be_v move_v with_o compassion_n towards_o his_o brother_n seek_v where_o to_o weep_v 34._o and_o say_v where_o have_v you_o lay_v he_o they_o say_v lord_n come_v and_o see_v m._n this_o be_v not_o to_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o christ_n know_v not_o in_o what_o place_n lazarus_n be_v bury_v for_o he_o who_o be_v so_o far_o of_o know_v without_o any_o man_n report_n that_o he_o be_v dead_a how_o can_v he_o also_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o burial_n god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v suspect_v this_o in_o christ_n from_o who_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v himself_o how_o secréete_o soever_o he_o be_v hide_v he_o demand_v therefore_o this_o question_n not_o to_o learn_v but_o to_o avoid_v the_o wicked_a suspicion_n of_o the_o jew_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n fradulentlye_o in_o this_o matter_n 35._o and_o jesus_n weep_v m._n these_o tear_n come_v in_o very_o good_a order_n and_o time_n before_o the_o miracle_n that_o the_o infirmitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n may_v be_v join_v in_o this_o work_n with_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o if_o so_o be_v the_o divine_a majesty_n show_v in_o the_o raise_n uppe_o of_o lazarus_n shall_v discourage_v any_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n his_o weep_n pity_v and_o compassion_n may_v draw_v they_o back_o again_o and_o also_o that_o if_o so_o be_v any_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o infirmity_n of_o weep_v he_o may_v be_v move_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o power_n in_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n 36._o then_o say_v the_o jew_n behold_v how_o he_o love_v he_o 37._o and_o some_o of_o they_o say_v can_v not_o he_o which_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a have_v make_v that_o this_o man_n also_o shall_v not_o have_v dye_v r._n parte_fw-la construe_v the_o tear_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o best_a and_o part_n to_o the_o worst_a c._n and_o saint_n john_n describe_v unto_o we_o a_o double_a judgement_n concern_v christ_n for_o these_o former_a sort_n which_o say_v behold_v how_o he_o love_v he_o although_o they_o think_v not_o so_o honourable_o of_o christ_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v as_o attribute_v nothing_o unto_o he_o but_o that_o which_o be_v human_a do_v notwithstanding_o speak_v more_o indifferent_o and_o modest_o of_o he_o than_o the_o other_o who_o malicious_o murmur_v against_o he_o for_o that_o he_o do_v not_o save_v and_o keep_v lazarus_n from_o death_n for_o although_o they_o do_v commend_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o which_o the_o other_o say_v nothing_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o the_o same_o without_o a_o certain_a reproach_n hereby_o it_o do_v evidentlye_o enough_o appear_v that_o the_o miracle_n which_o christ_n have_v already_o wrought_v be_v very_o well_o know_v unto_o they_o but_o the_o more_o filthy_a be_v their_o ingratitude_n that_o they_o let_v not_o to_o make_v exclamation_n against_o he_o because_o in_o one_o part_n he_o cease_v and_o satisfy_v not_o their_o expectation_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n man_n have_v be_v always_o unthankful_a unto_o god_n &_o be_v unthankful_a still_o except_o he_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n in_o every_o point_n we_o fall_v by_o and_o by_o to_o murmur_a and_o grudge_v say_v see_v he_o have_v be_v always_o hitherto_o wont_a to_o help_v why_o do_v he_o now_o fail_v i_o so_o we_o read_v of_o the_o israelite_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n can_v god_n also_o geve_v meat_n unto_o his_o people_n in_o the_o wilderness_n behold_v he_o stroke_v the_o roche_n so_o that_o water_n gush_v out_o withal_o and_o can_v he_o geve_v bread_n also_o but_o this_o their_o murmur_a provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v if_o we_o read_v the_o three_o score_n and_o eighteen_o psalm_n begin_v at_o the_o ninetéen_a verse_n 38._o jesus_n therefore_o again_o groan_v in_o himself_o and_o come_v to_o the_o grave_n it_o be_v a_o cave_n and_o a_o stone_n lay_v upon_o it_o c._n because_o christ_n come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n not_o as_o a_o idle_a looker_n on_o but_o as_o a_o wrestler_n which_o prepare_v himself_o to_o try_v mastery_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o he_o groan_v again_o for_o the_o violent_a tyranny_n of_o death_n which_o he_o go_v about_o to_o overcome_v be_v before_o his_o eye_n m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o this_o groan_v proceed_v of_o disdain_n and_o displeasure_n because_o the_o unbelief_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v do_v offend_v he_o but_o the_o former_a reason_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o apt_a name_o because_o he_o have_v more_o regard_n to_o the_o matter_n itself_o than_o to_o man_n m._n we_o must_v also_o note_v here_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n he_o answer_v not_o the_o wicked_a one_o as_o he_o may_v have_v do_v and_o as_o they_o deserve_v neither_o do_v he_o cease_v from_o finish_v the_o work_n which_o he_o have_v
she_o have_v be_v void_a of_o faith_n upon_o just_a cause_n therefore_o he_o say_v not_o if_o thou_o believe_v thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o but_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n c_o and_o that_o not_o only_o because_o faith_n do_v open_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o his_o work_n but_o because_o our_o faith_n make_v away_o for_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o offer_v itself_o unto_o we_o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o four_o score_n and_o one_o psalm_n begin_v at_o the_o eleven_o verse_n so_o again_o unbelief_n stop_v the_o access_n unto_o god_n and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v keep_v his_o hand_n fast_o shut_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n jesus_n can_v show_v no_o sign_n there_o 13.58_o mat._n 13.58_o because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n not_o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o because_o they_o which_o do_v withstand_v the_o same_o by_o their_o wickedness_n so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o m._n he_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o he_o may_v have_v say_v my_o glory_n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o son_n also_o shall_v be_v gloryfy_v by_o this_o miracle_n as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o christ_n think_v it_o better_a to_o use_v this_o modesty_n that_o he_o may_v seem_v rather_o to_o seek_v his_o father_n glory_n than_o his_o own_o although_o his_o father_n glory_n and_o he_o be_v always_o join_v together_o 41._o then_o they_o take_v away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v and_o jesus_n lyfte_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o say_v father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o then_o they_o take_v c._n now_o martha_n be_v content_v with_o this_o second_o say_n suffer_v the_o stone_n to_o be_v move_v she_o see_v nothing_o as_o yet_o but_o because_o she_o hear_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o command_v the_o same_o in_o vain_a she_o willing_o obey_v he_o where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v m._n the_o evangelist_n think_v that_o he_o can_v not_o sufficient_o inculcate_v the_o death_n of_o lazarus_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v make_v the_o glory_n o●_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v boath_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n the_o more_o manifest_a and_o jesus_n lift_v up_o his_o eye_n christ_n talk_v with_o his_o father_n before_o he_o command_v the_o dead_a man_n and_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o father_n he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n bu_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o very_a gesture_n of_o his_o body_n he_o may_v declare_v to_o the_o stander_n about_o he_o that_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o gever_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o good_a mind_n dispose_v to_o pray_v for_o if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n will_v true_o call_v upon_o god_n he_o must_v be_v join_v with_o he_o the_o which_o can_v be_v except_o he_o be_v lyft_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o ascend_v above_o the_o heaven_n the_o which_o a_o man_n can_v do_v by_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n only_o for_o the_o hypocrite_n also_o do_v the_o like_a who_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o the_o fylthynesse_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v seem_v by_o lift_v up_o of_o their_o eye_n and_o by_o wrthe_v of_o their_o face_n to_o draw_v heaven_n unto_o they_o but_o that_o which_o they_o do_v hipocritical_o the_o child_n of_o god_n must_v do_v sincere_o notwithstanding_o he_o which_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n toward_o heaven_n aught_o by_o his_o cogitation_n to_o include_v god_n there_o who_o be_v in_o every_o place_n fulfil_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o because_o man_n mind_n can_v be_v free_a from_o groase_a imagination_n but_o that_o they_o will_v imagine_v some_o groase_n and_o base_a thing_n to_o be_v in_o god_n except_o it_o be_v when_o they_o be_v lyft_v up_o above_o the_o world_n the_o scripture_n call_v we_o thither_o and_o testify_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v god_n seat_n i_o esay_n 66_o i_o but_o this_o lyft_a up_o of_o the_o eye_n be_v not_o such_o a_o ceremonye_n that_o true_a prayer_n shall_v not_o be_v acceptable_a without_o the_o same_o for_o the_o publican_n no_o doubt_n which_o look_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n do_v nevertheless_o by_o his_o faith_n pierce_v the_o heaven_n and_o yet_o this_o gesture_n be_v profitable_a for_o it_o styr_v up_o man_n to_o seek_v god_n and_o move_v the_o affection_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n when_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n be_v rapte_v thither_o with_o great_a vehemency_n father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o bu_n the_o son_n be_v not_o so_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n as_o we_o be_v hear_v but_o after_o a_o more_o certain_a special_a manner_n for_o the_o father_n hear_v the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o will_n and_o power_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o son_n wyll_v not_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o father_n neither_o stand_v he_o in_o need_n of_o any_o other_o foreign_a or_o external_a help_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o begin_v with_o thankesgeve_a when_o as_o he_o have_v ask_v nothing_o but_o although_o the_o evangelist_n make_v no_o mention_v that_o he_o pray_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o first_o make_v his_o petition_n for_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o it_o be_v very_o credible_a that_o among_o those_o groaninge_n of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v he_o pray_v now_o have_v obtain_v lazarus_n life_n he_o geve_v thanks_n to_o the_o father_n and_o in_o that_o he_o arrogate_v not_o this_o power_n to_o himself_o but_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o his_o father_n as_o receive_v from_o he_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o father_n for_o to_o frame_v himself_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o man_n one_o while_o he_o prove_v and_o confirm_v his_o divinitye_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o whatsoever_o belong_v unto_o god_n another_o while_n be_v content_v with_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o a_o man_n he_o geve_v the_o whole_a glory_n of_o the_o divinitye_n to_o the_o father_n 42._o howbeit_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o hear_v i_o always_o but_o because_o of_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o b._n he_o be_v sure_a already_o that_o his_o father_n will_v at_o his_o request_n restore_v lazarus_n to_o life_n therefore_o that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n he_o give_v he_o thanks_n c._n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o he_o know_v the_o same_o before_o he_o so_o do_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o so_o small_a favour_n with_o the_o father_n that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v what_o miracle_n he_o will_v at_o the_o first_o without_o stay_n therefore_o he_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o consent_n between_o he_o and_o the_o father_n that_o nothing_o be_v deny_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v pray_v see_v he_o do_v that_o thing_n only_o which_o he_o know_v be_v command_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n but_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o more_o evident_o appear_v unto_o man_n that_o this_o be_v a_o divine_a work_n in_o deed_n he_o therefore_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n b._n to_o be_v short_a he_o geve_v thanks_n unto_o the_o father_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n testify_v that_o he_o wrought_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o father_n that_o he_o be_v always_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o his_o will_n and_o the_o father_n will_v be_v all_o one_o c._n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v why_o then_o do_v he_o not_o raise_v up_o all_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a we_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o counsel_n appoint_v so_o many_o miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v and_o no_o more_o than_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o approbation_n &_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v b._n let_v we_o know_v that_o all_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n belong_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n they_z which_o stóode_v by_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n know_v the_o father_n and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o pray_v before_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v
he_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o to_o will_v his_o father_n will_n and_o also_o to_o be_v equal_a with_o he_o in_o power_n for_o he_o wrought_v other_o miracle_n also_o without_o prayer_n 9.25_o mar._n 9.25_o as_o when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o devil_n 8.2_o math._n 8.2_o come_v forth_o of_o he_o and_o to_o the_o leprouse_n man_n which_o say_v if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o 9.6_o math._n 9.6_o i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_o and_o to_o he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o paulsey_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o walk_v 7.8_o luk._n 7.8_o a._n in_o like_a manner_n when_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o widow_n son_n from_o death_n we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o pray_v but_o say_v only_o young_a man_n i_o say_v unto_o thou_o arise_v 4i_fw-la mar._n 5_o 4i_fw-la neither_o yet_o when_o he_o raise_v up_o jayrus_n daughter_n therefore_o although_o he_o can_v have_v raise_v up_o lazarus_n with_o the_o wag_n of_o his_o finger_n yet_o notwithstanding_o thus_o it_o behove_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v because_o of_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o 43._o and_o when_o he_o thus_o have_v speak_v he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n lazarus_n come_v forth_o m._n he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n hear_v with_o what_o word_n he_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a man_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n supersticiouslye_o or_o by_o magical_a art_n furthermore_o it_o be_v also_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v hear_v how_o constant_o and_o without_o doubt_v with_o great_a confidence_n and_o authority_n he_o command_v the_o dead_a man_n to_o arise_v and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o cry_v aloud_o c._n and_o whereas_o he_o touch_v not_o the_o dead_a body_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o cry_v only_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n his_o power_n therein_o do_v more_o manifest_o appear_v and_o withal_o he_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o wonderful_a and_o secréete_n efficacye_n of_o his_o word_n for_o how_o do_v christ_n restore_v life_n unto_o the_o dead_a but_o by_o his_o word_n wherefore_o in_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n he_o use_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n the_o which_o we_o feel_v daily_o by_o the_o scence_n of_o faith_n in_o show_v his_o voice_n to_o be_v a_o quicken_a voice_n r._n as_o therefore_o he_o make_v the_o world_n by_o his_o word_n so_o by_o his_o word_n he_o raise_v the_o dead_a man_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v learn_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v for_o as_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a in_o body_n be_v bring_v again_o by_o the_o word_n to_o corporal_a life_n even_o so_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n by_o the_o word_n receive_v be_v restore_v into_o the_o everlasting_a life_n of_o righteousness_n read_v the_o five_o and_o twenty_o verse_n '_o of_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n before_o 44._o and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a come_v forth_o bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n with_o grave_a clothes_n and_o his_o face_n be_v bind_v with_o a_o napkin_n jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o loose_v he_o and_o let_v he_o go_v and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a bu_n this_o be_v a_o manifest_a declaration_n of_o the_o divinitye_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n that_o his_o power_n be_v not_o void_a and_o ineffectual_a but_o lyvely_a and_o quicken_a for_o now_o he_o perform_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o name_o that_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o lazarus_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o come_v forth_o sound_a and_o whoale_n in_o body_n and_o his_o face_n be_v bind_v with_o a_o napkin_n c._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v of_o grave_a clothes_n and_o the_o napkin_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n even_o as_o he_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o same_o also_o the_o jew_n retain_v this_o manner_n of_o burial_n at_o this_o day_n wrap_v the_o body_n in_o one_o piece_n of_o linen_n and_o the_o head_n with_o a_o towel_n or_o napkin_n several_a as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o nintéene_a chapter_n follow_v 6.7_o grave_a clothes_n be_v all_o the_o riches_n we_o carry_v out_o of_o this_o world_n with_o us._n i_o tim._n 6.7_o bu_n and_o whereas_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o bind_v hand_n &_o foot_n all_o new_a writer_n almost_o think_v it_o to_o be_v do_v by_o a_o new_a miracle_n but_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v and_o see_v what_o riches_n we_o carry_v forth_o of_o this_o world_n with_o we_o name_o our_o wynd_n sheet_n and_o grave_a clothes_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o bring_v nothing_o into_o this_o world_n neither_o may_v we_o carry_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o same_o loose_v he_o and_o let_v he_o go_v c._n this_o be_v also_o command_v to_o be_v do_v to_o amplifye_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v feel_v with_o their_o hand_n the_o work_n of_o god_n which_o they_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n r._n for_o he_o which_o have_v put_v away_o death_n with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n can_v either_o have_v make_v the_o gravecloathe_n to_o have_v fall_v of_o by_o their_o own_o accord_n or_o else_o that_o lazarus_n shall_v have_v unbounde_v himself_o but_o christ_n will_v have_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o stander_n by_o confession_n auricular_a confession_n to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o miracle_n but_o to_o ridiculous_a be_v the_o papist_n who_o upon_o this_o place_n ground_n their_o auricular_a confession_n christ_n say_v they_o will_v have_v lazarus_n after_o he_o have_v restore_v he_o to_o life_n to_o be_v loose_v by_o his_o disciple_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n except_o the_o church_n also_o forgeve_v we_o our_o sin_n but_o whereupon_o do_v they_o define_v and_o gather_v that_o the_o office_n of_o lose_v lazarus_n be_v enjoin_v the_o disciple_n we_o rather_o gather_v by_o the_o text_n that_o it_o be_v enjoin_v the_o jew_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v all_o scruple_n of_o doubt_v take_v from_o they_o a._n therefore_o this_o place_n serve_v no_o more_o their_o turn_n to_o auricular_a confession_n than_o do_v that_o other_o of_o the_o ten_o leper_n in_o the_o seventéene_a chapter_n of_o luke_n the_o which_o also_o they_o have_v wicked_o abuse_v 45._o then_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n which_o come_v to_o marye_n and_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v believe_v on_o he_o bu_n as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n it_o have_v diverse_a time_n appear_v how_o the_o world_n be_v affect_v at_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o the_o same_o appear_v to_o we_o again_o in_o this_o present_a chapter_n for_o some_o obey_v god_n call_v receive_v the_o holy_a institution_n of_o god_n and_o judge_v right_o of_o god_n work_n even_o as_o do_v these_o man_n who_o see_v the_o wonderful_a miracle_n beléeve_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n but_o other_o some_o believe_v not_o obey_v not_o the_o work_n and_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o do_v rather_o speak_v evell_a of_o the_o same_o betray_v the_o same_o and_o go_v about_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n to_o obscure_v and_o overwhelm_v the_o manifest_a truth_n m._n many_o beléeve_v but_o not_o all_o because_o all_o be_v not_o choose_v to_o life_n c._n therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v the_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v to_o be_v without_o fruit_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o bring_v some_o unto_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a use_n of_o miracle_n name_o that_o they_o may_v either_o prepare_v we_o unto_o faith_n or_o else_o may_v confirm_v we_o in_o the_o same_o the_o former_a use_n the_o evangelist_n noat_v here_o for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o of_o who_o he_o speak_v wonder_v &_o reverence_v the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o disciple_n otherwise_o the_o bare_a miracle_n can_v not_o suffice_v unto_o faith_n therefore_o by_o the_o word_n believe_v in_o this_o place_n we_o ought_v to_o understande_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o docillitye_n and_o readiness_n to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o therefore_o the_o jew_n which_o come_v to_o comfort_n mary_n and_o be_v bring_v unto_o faith_n by_o this_o sign_n receyve_v thereby_o no_o small_a consolation_n 46._o but_o some_o of_o they_o go_v their_o way_n to_o the_o phariseis_n and_o tell_v they_o what_o jesus_n have_v do_v m._n here_o the_o nature_n and_o disposition_n of_o perverse_a and_o obstinate_a personne_n be_v describe_v they_o have_v see_v no_o other_o thing_n nor_o less_o than_o the_o
rest_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o begin_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o of_o so_o notable_a a_o miracle_n but_o when_o they_o have_v see_v the_o very_a same_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o beléeve_v that_o because_o of_o they_o they_o go_v about_o to_o betray_v he_o c._n in_o the_o which_o appear_v detestable_a ingratitude_n or_o rather_o horrible_a madness_n whereby_o we_o gather_v how_o blind_a impiety_n be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o lazarus_n shall_v have_v mollify_v their_o stoany_a heart_n but_o there_o be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n which_o the_o impiety_n of_o their_o poison_n do_v not_o infect_a and_o corrupt_a with_o bitterness_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v profit_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o god_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o their_o heart_n be_v purge_v for_o whosoever_o have_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n although_o they_o see_v heaven_n and_o earth_n confound_v together_o will_v not_o cease_v by_o ingratitude_n to_o reject_v wholesome_a doctrine_n so_o a_o man_n may_v see_v at_o this_o day_n many_o of_o the_o frantic_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n require_v notwithstanding_o miracle_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n but_o to_o no_o other_o end_n than_o by_o obstinate_a resist_a to_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v monster_n of_o man_n m._n a_o man_n shall_v find_v also_o many_o who_o after_o the_o ensample_n of_o these_o wicked_a one_o be_v either_o stir_v up_o by_o envy_n or_o else_o move_v to_o please_v other_o do_v report_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v good_a and_o can_v not_o be_v blame_v to_o wicked_a man_n that_o they_o may_v provoke_v they_o more_o and_o more_o to_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o good_a man_n c._n and_o they_o bring_v news_n of_o the_o miracle_n unto_o the_o pharise_n because_o they_o be_v bitter_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n r._n they_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n to_o who_o christ_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n the_o stomble_a stone_n and_o the_o rock_n of_o offence_n 47._o then_o gather_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o pharisee_n a_o counsel_n and_o say_v what_o do_v we_o for_o this_o man_n do_v many_o miracle_n m._n the_o chief_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr be_v in_o outward_a show_n the_o prelate_n and_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o jewishe_a religion_n hear_v of_o so_o notable_a and_o wonderful_a a_o miracle_n and_o have_v regard_n to_o their_o name_n dignity_n and_o estimation_n seek_v mean_n and_o way_n to_o hynder_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o defend_v their_o lordship_n and_o government_n which_o they_o have_v over_o the_o people_n of_o god_n c._n verylye_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v more_o senseless_a than_o brute_n beast_n they_o will_v have_v give_v some_o reverence_n toward_o christ_n after_o so_o notable_a a_o declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n but_o now_o they_o gather_v themselves_o together_o and_o take_v counsel_n how_o they_o may_v overthrow_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o sight_n whereof_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v they_o abash_v what_o do_v we_o bu_n as_o the_o wicked_a in_o all_o their_o affair_n be_v uncertain_a what_o to_o do_v amaze_v and_o confound_v even_o so_o their_o counsel_n be_v not_o without_o great_a care_n and_o trouble_v c._n in_o these_o word_n they_o seem_v to_o accuse_v their_o own_o sleuth_n and_o negligence_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o christ_n by_o their_o forbearaunce_n have_v more_o fame_n and_o glory_n whereas_o it_o lie_v in_o they_o to_o hinder_v the_o same_o this_o be_v the_o confidence_n and_o trust_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o which_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o hand_n to_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v for_o this_o man_n do_v many_o miracle_n b._n behold_v here_o how_o monsterouse_a mad_a impiety_n be_v they_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o do_v such_o sign_n and_o wonder_n that_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o he_o have_v power_n over_o life_n and_o death_n and_o yet_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o if_o they_o withstand_v he_o they_o shall_v labour_n in_o vain_a therefore_o very_o obstinate_o and_o wilful_o they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o oppress_v the_o glory_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n but_o god_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v not_o a_o sleep_n for_o although_o he_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o a_o time_n &_o laugh_v their_o foolish_a arrogancy_n to_o scorn_n yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o the_o length_n he_o pour_v upon_o they_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o his_o wrath_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o twelve_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o psalm_n m._n but_o what_o need_v they_o to_o gather_v a_o counsel_n when_o as_o they_o have_v already_o not_o only_o among_o themselves_o but_o also_o by_o a_o public_a edict_n 9.22_o john_n 9.22_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o impiety_n though_o it_o be_v overcome_v a_o hoonder_v time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o will_v not_o geve_v place_n unto_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 48_o if_o we_o let_v he_o escape_v thus_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o the_o roman_n shall_v come_v and_o take_v away_o boath_n our_o room_n and_o the_o people_n m._n these_o man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v by_o their_o permission_n that_o christ_n wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n and_o that_o it_o lie_v in_o their_o hand_n to_o stay_v he_o from_o work_v the_o same_o c._n if_o so_o be_v christ_n have_v be_v a_o deceiver_n their_o office_n have_v be_v to_o withstand_v he_o lest_o she_o shall_v draw_v away_o the_o sheep_n from_o the_o lord_n fold_n but_o in_o confess_v his_o miracle_n they_o plain_o enough_o declare_v that_o they_o care_v not_o for_o god_n who_o power_n they_o so_o secure_o and_o disdainfullye_o contemn_v all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o r._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v if_o so_o be_v we_o wink_v at_o his_o do_n all_o jewry_n will_v account_v he_o for_o a_o king_n and_o the_o messiah_n m._n be_v faith_n then_o such_o a_o matter_n that_o it_o require_v the_o high_a priest_n &_o magistrate_n to_o favour_v the_o same_o nay_o very_o for_o although_o you_o shall_v go_v about_o by_o violence_n to_o constrain_v man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n yet_o nevertheless_o all_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o faith_n in_o christ_n depend_v upon_o election_n &_o god_n call_v which_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v restrain_v o_o you_o blind_a guide_v call_v faith_n depend_v on_o election_n and_o god_n call_v all_o man_n be_v not_o elect_v to_o this_o faith_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v fear_v that_o although_o you_o do_v so_o suffer_v christ_n all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o the_o roman_n shall_v come_v c._n these_o man_n to_o cover_v and_o cleake_v their_o wickedness_n pretend_v a_o love_n and_o care_n to_o ward_n the_o common_a wealth_n and_o profit_n of_o their_o country_n but_o they_o special_o fear_v lest_o their_o cruel_a government_n shall_v decay_v yet_o they_o feign_v to_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o temple_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o their_o country_n and_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o people_n before_o they_o confess_v that_o christ_n wrought_v many_o miracle_n and_o now_o they_o be_v afeard_a of_o the_o roman_n as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o their_o safety_n which_o plain_o declare_v itself_o in_o those_o miracle_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o consultation_n be_v the_o peril_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n b._n and_o this_o pretence_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n have_v some_o show_n of_o truth_n because_o they_o have_v suffer_v already_o many_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o diverse_a sedition_n and_o rebellion_n therefore_o they_o will_v have_v it_o seem_v that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o the_o people_n will_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o receive_v he_o for_o christ_n and_o the_o mesias_n and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n &_o that_o then_o the_o roman_n will_v come_v and_o beséege_v the_o city_n and_o carry_v away_o the_o people_n captive_a thus_o impyetie_n always_o find_v somewhat_o that_o have_v some_o show_n of_o profit_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a withal_o c_o but_o that_o be_v a_o untoward_a consultation_n to_o avoid_v peril_n which_o can_v be_v shun_v unless_o we_o forsake_v the_o right_a course_n first_o we_o must_v seek_v what_o the_o lord_n command_v and_o what_o he_o will_v have_v do_v this_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v what_o success_n soever_o we_o have_v but_o these_o man_n seek_v to_o destroy_v christ_n lest_o any_o inconvenience_n happen_v if_o so_o
their_o own_o person_n only_o but_o their_o subject_n also_o for_o so_o they_o make_v they_o so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o minister_n of_o murder_n and_o impiety_n by_o command_v they_o to_o betray_v innocent_a blood_n m._n if_o any_o man_n by_o this_o place_n demand_v whether_o by_o the_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o maigstrate_n the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o betray_v any_o man_n who_o death_n be_v seek_v we_o answer_v in_o few_o word_n first_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o betray_v a_o innocent_a second_o if_o he_o be_v guiltye_n and_o a_o offender_n who_o death_n be_v seek_v for_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o he_o be_v if_o he_o be_v seek_v for_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v punish_v because_o he_o have_v offend_v once_o or_o twice_o let_v no_o good_a man_n be_v easy_o move_v to_o bewray_v he_o but_o if_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n as_o a_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o common_a wealth_n then_o let_v no_o good_a man_n if_o he_o know_v where_o he_o be_v i2_n i_o kin._n i9_n i2_n be_v afraid_a to_o bring_v he_o forth_o a._n consider_v the_o example_n of_o david_n and_o of_o the_o prophet_n 3_o i_o kin._n i8_n 3_o who_o that_o faithful_a ahab_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n do_v hide_v in_o cave_n ❧_o the_o xij_o chapter_n 1._o then_o jesus_n six_o day_n before_o the_o passover_n come_v to_o bethany_n where_o lazarus_n have_v be_v dead_a who_o he_o raise_v from_o death_n this_o hisstorye_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n write_v in_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n &_o mark_v in_o his_o fourteen_o chapter_n but_o luke_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o same_o and_o it_o seem_v that_o these_o three_o evangelist_n matthew_n mark_v and_o john_n seem_v to_o have_v all_o one_o cause_n to_o write_v the_o same_o which_o be_v that_o they_o may_v reveal_v whereupon_o judas_n iscariot_n be_v move_v to_o betray_v the_o lord_n name_o for_o that_o the_o occasion_n of_o gain_n be_v take_v from_o he_o which_o he_o look_v for_o by_o the_o precious_a ointment_n if_o so_o be_v the_o same_o have_v be_v sell_v satan_n so_o prick_v he_o forward_o that_o straight_o after_o the_o effution_n of_o this_o ointment_n he_o be_v reproove_v of_o the_o lord_n go_v unto_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o make_v a_o bargain_n with_o they_o for_o the_o betra_v of_o the_o lord_n b._n therefore_o as_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o lord_n death_n approach_v so_o also_o he_o draw_v near_o unto_o the_o place_n of_o the_o same_o thus_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n lead_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v appoint_v they_o from_o above_o i2_n heb._n i2_n in_o due_a and_o convenient_a time_n only_o let_v we_o follow_v this_o our_o captain_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n c._n we_o see_v also_o that_o their_o judgement_n be_v to_o rash_a which_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v not_o come_v whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o make_v such_o haste_n but_o patient_o and_o quiet_o to_o tarry_v until_o the_o opportunity_n come_v which_o we_o know_v not_o of_o christ_n come_v first_o to_o bethany_n that_o three_o day_n after_o he_o may_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o geve_v unto_o judas_n convenient_a time_n and_o place_n to_o betray_v he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o prepare_a sacrifice_n at_o the_o appoint_a hour_n for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v i0_n john_n i0_n but_o he_o go_v willing_o to_o be_v offer_v a._n before_o when_o his_o enemy_n seek_v his_o death_n he_o flee_v because_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o come_v but_o know_v now_o that_o the_o appoint_a time_n of_o his_o death_n be_v come_v he_o willing_o offer_v himself_o to_o his_o enemy_n such_o a_o earnest_n desire_v he_o have_v to_o redeem_v mankind_n c._n and_o see_v he_o come_v six_o day_n to_o bethany_n before_o ester_n we_o may_v gether_o by_o matthew_n and_o mark_v that_o he_o tarry_v four_o day_n there_o m._n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o erect_v and_o comfort_v those_o of_o bethany_n before_o his_o passion_n for_o he_o know_v that_o they_o be_v in_o peril_n because_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o near_o a._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_n of_o lazarus_n to_o bring_v in_o mind_n the_o late_a miracle_n 2._o there_o they_o make_v he_o a_o supper_n and_o martha_n serve_v but_o lazarus_n be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n with_o he_o c._n what_o day_n they_o make_v he_o the_o feast_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o mary_n john_n do_v not_o declare_v but_o it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v short_o after_o his_o come_n thither_o but_o lazarus_n be_v one_o of_o they_o m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n for_o by_o this_o feast_n it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o which_o lazarus_n sit_v at_o meat_n with_o other_o that_o lazarus_n and_o not_o a_o phantasye_a or_o spiryte_v in_o stead_n of_o lazarus_n be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n and_o restore_v to_o human_a life_n r._n for_o this_o cause_n also_o he_o command_v meat_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o damsel_n who_o he_o have_v restore_v to_o life_n 43_o mar._n 3_o 43_o and_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v again_o will_v eat_v with_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o sertaintie_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24.43_o luk._n 24.43_o whereupon_o peter_n also_o use_v this_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 4i_fw-fr act._n i0_n 4i_fw-fr as_o that_o he_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o after_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o concern_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o stoarye_a until_o you_o come_v to_o the_o nine_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o twenty_o six_o chapter_n of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o seven_o verse_n 9_o much_o people_n of_o the_o jew_v therefore_o have_v knowledge_n that_o he_o be_v there_o and_o they_o come_v not_o for_o jesus_n sake_n only_o but_o that_o they_o may_v see_v lazarus_n also_o who_o he_o raise_v from_o death_n m._n the_o lord_n can_v not_o be_v hide_v in_o bethanie_n a_o place_n boath_n never_o unto_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o now_o famous_a for_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n therefore_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o jew_n special_o of_o those_o which_o come_v from_o far_o from_o all_o place_n thereaboute_a for_o the_o feast_n at_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n to_o be_v purify_v know_v that_o he_o be_v at_o bethany_n go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n thither_o that_o they_o may_v see_v boath_n jesus_n and_o also_o lazarus_n c._n and_o very_o the_o near_a that_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n death_n approach_v the_o more_o famous_a it_o be_v meet_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v in_o all_o man_n mouth_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v a_o mean_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o more_o fullness_n of_o faith_n after_o his_o death_n bv_v this_o people_n so_o little_o fear_v the_o edict_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n by_o which_o they_o forbid_v all_o man_n to_o join_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o obey_v of_o the_o same_o that_o they_o do_v the_o more_o diligent_o follow_v christ_n and_o inquire_v after_o he_o m._n let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n be_v such_o that_o although_o wicked_a inquisytor_n go_v about_o to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o do_v more_o open_o and_o bright_o shine_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n for_o as_o it_o be_v light_a so_o also_o it_o love_v to_o shine_v c._n when_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o those_o jew_n come_v not_o for_o jesus_n sake_n only_o but_o also_o to_o see_v lazarouse_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o come_v to_o behold_v the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o christ_n in_o lazarus_n 10._o but_o the_o high_a priest_n hold_v a_o counsel_n that_o they_o may_v put_v lazarus_n to_o death_n also_o bu_n this_o be_v a_o rare_a and_o new_a example_n of_o unspeakable_a madness_n and_o beastly_a cruelty_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharaseis_n consult_v to_o kill_v lazarus_n c._n this_o be_v outrageous_a fury_n to_o kill_v he_o who_o all_o man_n may_v see_v to_o be_v raise_v up_o by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o madness_n by_o which_o satan_n provoke_v the_o wicked_a so_o that_o they_o will_v never_o cease_v to_o be_v mad_a though_o god_n cause_n heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o fight_v against_o they_o for_o this_o so_o wicked_a a_o consultation_n be_v therefore_o describe_v that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v bring_v
detract_v his_o prayer_n which_o he_o know_v be_v against_o his_o calling_n and_o wish_v to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o he_o shall_v not_o fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v enjoin_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n last_o he_o be_v content_v with_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n only_o he_o forget_v all_o other_o thing_n and_o count_v they_o as_o nothing_o but_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v unméete_a for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v unaduised_o make_v his_o prayer_n the_o which_o he_o must_v by_o and_o by_o renounce_v to_o obey_v his_o father_n we_o confess_v very_o that_o this_o be_v the_o foolishness_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n of_o offence_n pure_a affection_n in_o christ_n be_v pure_a a._n be_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n but_o the_o more_o the_o lord_n abace_v himself_o the_o more_o his_o unspeakable_a love_n towards_o we_o be_v manifest_v moreover_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o be_v speak_v of_o before_o that_o the_o human_a affection_n from_o the_o which_o he_o be_v not_o free_a be_v pure_a in_o he_o and_o void_a of_o sin_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o be_v frame_v and_o temper_v to_o the_o obdience_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o let_v but_o the_o christ_n shall_v fear_v natural_o death_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o desire_n to_o obey_v god_n but_o in_o diverse_a respect_n hereupon_o come_v the_o correction_n when_o he_o say_v that_o therefore_o he_o come_v into_o this_o hour_n for_o how_o soever_o he_o fear_v death_n notwithstanding_o because_o he_o weigh_v wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v and_o what_o the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n require_v he_o offer_v the_o horror_n conceive_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o nature_n to_o his_o father_n to_o be_v correct_v or_o rather_o that_o the_o same_o be_v restrain_v he_o may_v make_v himself_o free_a and_o at_o liberty_n to_o excute_fw-la the_o commandment_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o so_o be_v the_o affection_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v pure_a from_o all_o sin_n ought_v so_o to_o be_v restrain_v that_o he_o may_v be_v obedient_a to_o his_o father_n god_n affection_n in_o man_n enemy_n to_o god_n how_o diligent_o ought_v we_o to_o seek_v to_o suppress_v our_o affection_n see_v there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o but_o they_o be_v enemy_n unto_o god_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o the_o godly_a to_o strive_v against_o themselves_o untyll_o they_o have_v deny_v themselves_o we_o must_v also_o note_n how_o that_o not_o only_o those_o affection_n be_v to_o be_v bridle_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o also_o which_o do_v hinder_v the_o course_n of_o our_o call_n although_o otherwise_o they_o be_v neither_o hurtful_a nor_o vitiouse_a to_o the_o end_n this_o may_v more_o evident_o appear_v we_o must_v place_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o degree_n in_o the_o second_o degree_n the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a will_n of_o man_n as_o the_o same_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o adam_n and_o as_o the_o same_o be_v in_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o degree_n our_o will_n which_o be_v infect_v by_o the_o contagion_n of_o sin_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v a_o rule_n to_o the_o which_o whatsoever_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o same_o must_v be_v subject_a now_o the_o pure_a will_n of_o nature_n shall_v not_o of_o itself_o be_v rebelliouse_a unto_o god_n howbeit_o man_n have_v many_o impediment_n though_o he_o be_v frame_v and_o bend_v neversomuch_o to_o the_o right_a way_n unless_o he_o subdue_v his_o affection_n unto_o god_n christ_n therefore_o have_v one_o simple_a battle_n that_o he_o may_v fear_v no_o more_o that_o thing_n which_o natural_o he_o fear_v when_o he_o know_v otherwise_o to_o please_v god_n but_o we_o have_v a_o double_a battle_n because_o we_o must_v fight_v against_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o our_o flesh_n hereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o most_o valiant_a soldier_n do_v never_o get_v the_o victory_n without_o a_o wound_n we_o must_v also_o learn_v to_o observe_v this_o order_n that_o so_o often_o as_o we_o be_v vex_v with_o fear_n or_o oppress_v with_o sorrow_n we_o by_o and_o by_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n unto_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o worse_a or_o more_o hurtful_a than_o to_o foster_v that_o within_o we_o which_o do_v vex_v us._n and_o this_o be_v the_o just_a punishment_n of_o sloth_n and_o negligence_n in_o all_o those_o which_o will_v not_o come_v unto_o god_n 28._o father_n glorify_v thy_o name_n then_o come_v there_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v i_o have_v boath_n glorify_v it_o and_o will_v glorify_v it_o again_o father_n glorify_v thy_o name_n b._n these_o be_v abrupt_a and_o break_a sentence_n and_o not_o speak_v without_o silence_n and_o conseal_n of_o somewhat_o that_o shall_v have_v be_v utter_v the_o which_o be_v often_o use_v of_o such_o as_o have_v trouble_v mind_n c_o but_o in_o these_o word_n he_o testify_v that_o he_o prefer_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n before_o all_o other_o thing_n yea_o before_o his_o own_o life_n b._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v for_o this_o cause_n that_o i_o may_v cause_v thy_o name_n o_o father_n to_o be_v gloryfy_v every_o where_o by_o my_o death_n i_o come_v into_o this_o hour_n grant_v i_o of_o thy_o goodness_n that_o this_o may_v always_o come_v to_o pass_v to_o have_v the_o name_n of_o god_n gloryfy_v be_v to_o have_v god_n the_o father_n himself_o in_o many_o place_n preach_v and_o acknowledge_v this_o begin_v to_o be_v do_v more_o excelent_o then_o at_o any_o time_n before_o after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v for_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o appear_v what_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n bring_v unto_o the_o world_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o true_a moderation_n of_o our_o prayer_n if_o so_o be_v we_o so_o defier_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o in_o they_o we_o prefer_v they_o before_o all_o other_o thing_n i_o have_v boath_n glorify_v it_o and_o will_v glorify_v it_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o will_v finish_v that_o which_o i_o have_v begin_v for_o god_n do_v not_o forsake_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n b._n the_o father_n have_v glorify_v his_o name_n when_o he_o wrought_v such_o notable_a miracl_n by_o the_o lord_n that_o in_o flesh_n he_o declare_v the_o testimony_n of_o his_o goodness_n again_o he_o will_v glorify_v the_o same_o by_o send_v the_o comforter_n which_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o shall_v cause_v many_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o or_o to_o speak_v more_o large_a he_o glorify_v it_o when_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n when_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n when_o he_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o magi_n guide_v by_o a_o star_n when_o he_o be_v acknoweledged_a of_o the_o saint_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o he_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o descend_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n when_o he_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v transfigure_v on_o the_o mountain_n and_o he_o will_v glorify_v the_o same_o when_o criste_n shall_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a when_o death_n shall_v never_o after_o have_v any_o more_o power_n over_o he_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o the_o heaven_n and_o his_o glory_n above_o all_o the_o earth_n when_o he_o shall_v power_v out_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v turn_v the_o wheal_n world_n unto_o he_o bu_n also_o the_o oracle_n or_o voice_n from_o heaven_n may_v thus_o be_v understand_v hitherto_o thou_o be_v my_o natural_a consubstantial_a and_o equal_a son_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o everlasting_a but_o when_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n thou_o have_v take_v upon_o thou_o man_n nature_n thou_o do_v loose_v nothing_o thereby_o of_o thy_o divine_a majesty_n as_o i_o will_v declare_v thou_o shall_v dye_v in_o deed_n as_o man_n but_o have_v overcome_v sin_n death_n and_o hell_n thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o as_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v worship_v with_o i_o throughoute_n the_o whoale_n world_n moreover_o because_o it_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o salve_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o chrosse_n &_o to_o take_v away_o the_o stomble_a stone_n of_o the_o fame_n the_o father_n do_v not_o only_o promise_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v gloriouse_a but_o do_v also_o promise_v to_o adourne_v the_o same_o so_o much_o as_o ●uer_v it_o be_v adorn_v before_o m._n we_o have_v also_o to_o note_n in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n can_v
but_o be_v hear_v of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o ●ende_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n 29._o the_o people_n therefore_o that_o stand_v by_o and_o hear_v it_o say_v that_o it_o thounder_v other_o say_v a_o angel_n speak_v to_o he_o c._n this_o very_o be_v wonderful_a that_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o shall_v be_v amazse_v at_o so_o manifest_a a_o miracle_n some_o like_a deaf_a man_n judge_v that_o to_o be_v a_o confuse_a sound_n which_o god_n speak_v plain_o other_o some_o not_o so_o senseless_a and_o dull_a yet_o notwithstanding_o diminish_v much_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o divine_a voice_n fain_o a_o angel_n to_o be_v the_o aucthoure_n of_o the_o same_o but_o the_o very_a same_o also_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n among_o man_n for_o god_n speak_v plain_o enough_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o force_n and_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n show_v itself_o which_o ought_v to_o shake_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v so_o can_v with_o many_o even_o as_o though_o it_o come_v from_o a_o mortal_a man_n only_o to_o other_o some_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v stammer_a speech_n a_o barbarouse_n voice_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thunder_n but_o yet_o that_o voice_n be_v not_o hear_v without_o profit_n for_o beside_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v some_o which_o do_v not_o interpret_v much_o s_n but_o the_o euaungeliste_n think_v good_a to_o note_n bréefe_o what_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v general_o in_o the_o world_n namely_o for_o that_o the_o great_a part_n hear_v god_n to_o speak_v plain_o and_o effectual_o hear_v not_o therefore_o that_o which_o the_o euaungeliste_n attribute_v hear_v to_o this_o multitude_n belong_v unto_o the_o same_o but_o in_o part_n only_o 30._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v this_o voice_n come_v not_o because_o of_o i_o but_o for_o your_o sake_n m._n the_o hearer_n think_v that_o this_o voice_n come_v to_o comfort_v he_o he_z therefore_o expound_v unto_o they_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o say_n this_o voice_n come_v not_o because_o of_o i_o c._n but_o have_v christ_n no_o need_n of_o comfort_n and_o confirmation_n or_o have_v the_o father_n less_o care_n for_o he_o than_o for_o we_o we_o must_v hold_n this_o principle_n as_o christ_n for_o our_o sake_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n even_o so_o what_o good_a thing_n soever_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o same_o be_v bestow_v for_o our_o sake_n furthermore_o this_o also_o be_v true_a that_o the_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n because_o of_o the_o people_n for_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o external_a miracle_n also_o this_o be_v a_o secret_a reprehension_n because_o the_o jew_n be_v as_o deaf_a as_o a_o stone_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n for_o see_v god_n speak_v for_o their_o sake_n their_o ingratitude_n be_v void_a of_o excuse_n see_v they_o apply_v not_o their_o ear_n to_o hear_v 31._o now_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o this_o world_n now_o shall_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v cast_v out_o m._n christ_n in_o these_o word_n seem_v to_o expound_v the_o heavenly_a voice_n which_o have_v say_v i_o have_v both_o glorify_v it_o and_o will_v also_o glorify_v it_o again_o for_o what_o else_o be_v it_o to_o glorify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n then_o to_o beat_v down_o and_o overthrow_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n c._n therefore_o the_o lord_n have_v end_v the_o battle_n already_o do_v triumph_n not_o only_o as_o the_o overcommer_n of_o fear_n but_o also_o as_o the_o conqueror_n of_o death_n for_o notable_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n which_o may_v have_v be_v to_o the_o disciple_n the_o cause_n of_o fear_n and_o trouble_v of_o mind_n this_o word_n judgement_n signify_v in_o some_o man_n opinion_n reformation_n to_o othersome_a damnation_n but_o the_o first_o signification_n be_v best_a as_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v reform_v and_o restore_v to_o his_o lawful_a order_n for_o we_o know_v that_o without_o christ_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n in_o this_o world_n and_o although_o christ_n have_v begoone_o already_o to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o death_n be_v the_o true_a beginning_n of_o a_o princely_a state_n in_o deed_n and_o the_o full_a reformation_n of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_n that_o this_o reformation_n of_o the_o world_n can_v not_o be_v make_v before_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n be_v abolish_v flesh_n tread_v under_o foot_n and_o whatsoeever_o else_o be_v against_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n final_o it_o be_v necessary_a the_o mortification_n shall_v go_v before_o the_o renew_v of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o christ_n pronounce_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n must_v be_v cast_v forth_o because_o hereof_o come_v confusion_n &_o deformity_n that_o while_n satan_n usurp_v tyranny_n iniquity_n do_v abound_v therefore_o satan_n be_v cast_v forth_o the_o world_n be_v call_v from_o defection_n to_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o government_n of_o god_n b._n for_o in_o judgement_n matter_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v alter_v and_o reform_v xi.xxi._fw-la luk._n xi.xxi._fw-la in_o the_o world_n satan_n have_v quiet_o exercise_v his_o tyranny_n till_o a_o strong_a than_o he_o come_v and_o spoil_v he_o c._n if_o any_o man_n demand_v how_o satan_n be_v cast_v forth_o in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n question_v who_o daily_o maintain_v war_n against_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n answer_v answer_v we_o answer_v that_o this_o eiection_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o any_o short_a time_n but_o that_o the_o notable_a effect_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v describe_v which_o daye_o appear_v a._n therefore_o we_o must_v daily_o fight_v against_o the_o sondery_a assault_n of_o satan_n for_o he_o seek_v like_o a_o roar_a lion_n continual_o who_o he_o may_v devowre_v notwithstanding_o we_o must_v so_o fight_v that_o by_o christ_n we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o of_o the_o victory_n 24_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n by_o rapine_n psal_n 24_o m_o and_o he_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n not_o because_o he_o be_v the_o lawful_a prince_n of_o the_o same_o but_o by_o rapine_n by_o which_o he_o have_v make_v mankind_n subject_n unto_o he_o by_o sin_n otherwise_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v the_o compass_n of_o the_o world_n and_o they_o that_o dwell_v therein_o 2.2_o 1._o cor._n 4.4_o ephe._n 2.2_o the_o apostle_n paul_n call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n which_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o unbeléefe_n by_o who_o they_o be_v hold_v captive_a to_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n m._n for_o his_o kingdom_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o unbeléeving_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o mortal_a man_n and_o now_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o he_o get_v entrance_n again_o into_o his_o old_a seat_n christ_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n can_v reign_v together_o christ_n be_v let_v in_o erpell_v satan_n and_o satan_n be_v receive_v 10.16_o joh._n 10.16_o christ_n depart_v for_o there_o be_v no_o agreement_n between_o christ_n and_o beliall_a 32._o and_o if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o unto_o i_o in_o that_o our_o savioure_n speak_v here_o so_o general_o that_o by_o his_o death_n he_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o he_o it_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v of_o the_o flock_n also_o he_o use_v this_o general_a speech_n because_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v gather_v boath_n out_o of_o the_o gentile_n and_o also_o out_o of_o the_o jew_n 6.16_o 2_z cor._n 6.16_o according_a to_o this_o place_n there_o shall_v be_v one_o shepherd_n and_o one_o shepfoulde_n 33._o this_o he_o say_v signify_v what_o death_n he_o shall_v dye_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n therefore_o but_o that_o the_o scence_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o chariot_n by_o which_o he_o shall_v carry_v all_o the_o faithful_a with_o he_o to_o his_o father_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v b._n you_o shall_v exalte_n i_o and_o set_v i_o in_o my_o true_a glory_n when_o you_o lift_v i_o up_o upon_o the_o cross_n you_o shall_v lift_v up_o my_o body_n from_o the_o earth_n that_o it_o may_v dye_v with_o great_a ignominy_n and_o so_o you_o shall_v think_v not_o only_o to_o cast_v i_o down_o but_o also_o utter_o to_o destroy_v i_o of_o the_o which_o your_o purpose_n you_o shall_v so_o fail_v that_o by_o the_o very_a same_o death_n you_o shall_v exalt_v i_o in_o deed_n from_o the_o earth_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o
after_o the_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v because_o the_o traitor_n be_v already_o go_v forth_o to_o finish_v his_o trayterouse_a act_n whereupon_o come_v short_o after_o the_o béeginning_n of_o his_o glorification_n b_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o time_n will_v come_v anon_o to_o finish_v by_o my_o death_n my_o base_a estate_n and_o to_o begin_v the_o time_n of_o my_o glory_n this_o be_v so_o never_o that_o i_o think_v i_o be_o already_o glorify_v i_o think_v i_o be_o christ_n already_o worshyp_v throughout_o the_o whoale_n world_n and_o god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o c._n this_o be_v add_v in_o steed_n of_o confirmation_n therefore_o he_o now_o show_v how_o he_o shall_v bring_v glory_n unto_o himself_o by_o such_o a_o death_n namely_o because_o he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n his_o father_n for_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n the_o unspeable_a goodness_n of_o god_n appear_v unto_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o by_o the_o same_o sin_n be_v abolish_v death_n destroy_v the_o power_n of_o hell_n vanquish_v &_o everlasting_a salvation_n give_v to_o man_n 32._o if_o god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o god_n shall_v also_o glorifye_v he_o in_o he_o self_n and_o shall_v straight_o way_n glorify_v he_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v glorify_v by_o the_o son_n first_o of_o all_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o cross_n &_o death_n so_o peter_n also_o glorify_v god_n by_o his_o death_n second_o because_o he_o be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o also_o god_n be_v glorify_v by_o we_o when_o by_o our_o good_a work_n occasion_n to_o glorify_v he_o as_o our_o father_n be_v give_v to_o mortal_a man_n three_o god_n be_v glorify_v by_o christ_n because_o he_o bring_v this_o world_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o boath_n by_o his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o also_o hy_z his_o miracle_n so_o all_o they_o glorify_v god_n which_o set_v forth_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o in_o this_o world_n c._n christ_n therefore_o gather_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a triumph_n by_o death_n in_o the_o which_o he_o seek_v only_o to_o glorify_v his_o father_n for_o the_o father_n do_v not_o so_o seek_v his_o glory_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n but_o that_o he_o make_v he_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o with_o he_o also_o shall_v suffer_v for_o a_o short_a time_n great_a glory_n shall_v appear_v in_o his_o death_n that_o which_o be_v fulfil_v for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n do_v so_o little_a obscure_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o thereby_o the_o same_o do_v more_o brightlye_o shine_v for_o thereby_o appear_v his_o unspeakable_a love_n towards_o mankind_n his_o exceed_a righteousness_n in_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n and_o in_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o his_o wonderful_a power_n in_o subdue_a death_n and_o destroy_v satan_n this_o doctrine_n be_v also_o to_o be_v apply_v unto_o we_o because_o although_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v conspire_v our_o infamy_n yet_o notwithstanding_o if_o we_o seek_v sincerelye_o and_o with_o our_o whole_a heart_n to_o glorifye_v god_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o also_o will_v glorifye_v us._n 2.30_o i_o kin._n 2.30_o for_o he_o say_v he_o which_o glorify_v i_o will_v i_o glorifye_v and_o shall_v straight_o way_n glorifye_v he_o c._n christ_n increase_v the_o consolation_n by_o the_o shortness_n of_o the_o time_n lest_o that_o delay_n shall_v cause_v the_o disciple_n to_o doubt_v and_o although_o this_o glory_n begin_v at_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o propagation_n be_v note_v which_o follow_v straight_o after_o when_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a create_v unto_o himself_o a_o new_a people_n 33._o little_o child_n yet_o a_o little_a while_n be_o i_o with_o you_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o as_o i_o say_v unto_o the_o jew_n whether_o i_o go_v thither_o can_v you_o not_o come_v also_o to_o you_o say_v i_o now_o r._n some_o writer_n affirm_v that_o swan_n a_o little_a before_o their_o death_n sing_v very_o swéetelye_o even_o so_o christ_n have_v at_o all_o time_n most_o gentlye_o deal_v and_o speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v near_o unto_o death_n he_o handele_v they_o more_o friendly_a call_v they_o little_a child_n than_o the_o which_o name_n what_o can_v be_v more_o acceptable_a and_o sweet_a to_o a_o godly_a man_n c._n by_o this_o gentle_a speech_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o go_v away_o from_o they_o because_o he_o have_v less_o care_n for_o their_o salvation_n see_v he_o love_v they_o tender_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v our_o brother_n but_o in_o that_o other_o name_n there_o be_v great_a vehemency_n of_o love_n express_v and_o because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o the_o departure_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o great_a grief_n unto_o the_o disciple_n therefore_o he_o tell_v they_o before_o hand_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v long_o with_o they_o and_o therewithal_o exhort_v they_o to_o patience_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v bu_n very_o short_o little_a child_n the_o wicked_a shall_v lay_v hand_n on_o i_o and_o carry_v i_o unto_o death_n r._n for_o the_o cross_n wait_v i_o at_o the_o door_n and_o by_o the_o cross_n i_o will_v go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n and_o obtain_v righteousness_n salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n for_o all_o that_o believe_v you_o shall_v seek_v i_o m._n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o will_v short_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o you_o shall_v desire_v my_o presence_n and_o have_v a_o wonderful_a longing_n after_o i_o and_o as_o i_o say_v unto_o the_o jew_n c._n he_o repeat_v unto_o they_o the_o very_a same_o word_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o the_o jew_n but_o in_o another_o scence_n for_o he_o say_v that_o they_o can_v follow_v patientlye_o to_o suffer_v his_o temporal_a absence_n and_o he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v bridle_v they_o that_o they_o may_v keep_v themselves_o within_o their_o compass_n until_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o battle_n in_o this_o earth_n he_o do_v not_o therefore_o seclude_v they_o for_o ever_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o jew_n but_o only_o command_v they_o patientlye_o to_o abide_v his_o leisure_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o he_o may_v bring_v they_o unto_o he_o into_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n read_v the_o seveth_o and_o eight_o chapter_n go_v before_o begin_v at_o the_o .34_o and_o .21_o verse_n 34._o a_o new_a commandment_n geve_v i_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o love_v together_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o that_o even_o so_o you_o love_v one_o another_o m._n after_o he_o have_v foretell_v they_o certain_a thing_n concern_v his_o departure_n c._n he_o add_v to_o the_o consolation_n a_o exhortation_n to_o love_v one_o another_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o i_o be_o absent_a from_o you_o in_o body_n show_v by_o your_o mutual_a love_n that_o you_o have_v not_o be_v teach_v by_o i_o in_o vain_a let_v this_o be_v your_o continual_a study_n let_v it_o be_v your_o special_a meditation_n that_o you_o be_v far_o from_o all_o disdain_n loftiness_n of_o mind_n jelousye_n envy_n vaineglorye_n and_o from_o strife_n and_o contencious_a c._n why_o he_o call_v this_o a_o new_a commandment_n there_o be_v diverse_a opinion_n some_o think_v this_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o forsomuch_o as_o all_o that_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o law_n concern_v love_n be_v lyteral_a and_o external_a christ_n write_v the_o same_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o so_o in_o their_o opinion_n the_o law_n be_v new_a which_o he_o set_v forth_o after_o a_o new_a fashion_n that_o it_o may_v have_v his_o full_a strength_n but_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o fetchte_v and_o contrary_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n other_o some_o expound_v it_o to_o be_v call_v a_o new_a commandment_n because_o although_o the_o law_n do_v command_v love_n yet_o notwitstanding_n because_o it_o be_v mix_v with_o many_o ceremony_n and_o circumstance_n depend_v upon_o the_o same_o the_o doctrine_n of_o love_n do_v not_o there_o so_o evident_o appear_v and_o contrariwise_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o perfection_n of_o love_n be_v appoint_v without_o any_o shadow_n this_o interpretation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v despyse_v howbeit_o christ_n seem_v to_o speak_v now_o simple_o for_o we_o know_v that_o law_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v keep_v diligent_o but_o be_v by_o little_a and_o little_a
of_o faith_n the_o world_n say_v he_o can_v receive_v the_o spirit_n because_o it_o know_v not_o the_o same_o but_o you_o know_v it_o because_o it_o abide_v with_o you_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n only_o which_o dwell_v in_o we_o offer_v itself_o to_o be_v know_v whereas_o to_o other_o it_o be_v unknown_a and_o incomprehensible_a r._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n all_o the_o most_o wise_a holy_a mighty_a and_o rich_a of_o the_o same_o be_v understand_v for_o these_o be_v call_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o world_n who_o the_o world_n only_a receivith_n and_o have_v in_o admiration_n wherefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v never_o les_fw-fr find_v than_o among_o the_o most_o mighty_a of_o this_o world_n for_o they_o love_v lie_v and_o hypocrisy_n they_o be_v blind_v with_o their_o gift_n they_o can_v therefore_o abide_v the_o spirit_n reprove_v they_o of_o lie_n and_o draw_v they_o from_o their_o gift_n unto_o the_o gever_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v also_o teach_v that_o the_o world_n be_v altogether_o wicked_a &_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n &_o subject_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o so_o many_o heresy_n error_n false_a worshippyng_n &_o such_o like_a do_v come_v into_o the_o world_n it_o be_v much_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v receive_v of_o this_o world_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o sobriety_n here_o the_o world_n be_v the_o welspringe_n of_o here_o can_v be_v receive_v of_o droonkard_n the_o spirit_n of_o humilytie_n of_o proud_a man_n nor_o the_o spirit_n of_o shamefastness_n of_o impudent_a person_n for_o this_o world_n be_v so_o blind_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v that_o it_o can_v neither_o see_v nor_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n final_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v therefore_o call_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o in_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v true_o dwell_v and_o abide_v 18._o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o but_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o m._n some_o understande_v this_o of_o the_o return_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n a._n but_o other_o some_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o refer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v you_o shall_v think_v when_o i_o be_o go_v from_o you_o in_o my_o bodily_a presence_n that_o you_o be_v orphan_n without_o a_o father_n but_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n well_o i_o will_v never_o leave_v you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n which_o shall_v help_v you_o with_o fatherly_a affection_n in_o all_o adversity_n so_o beneficial_a shall_v my_o departure_n be_v unto_o you_o so_o great_a profit_n shall_v my_o death_n bring_v unto_o you_o c._n this_o place_n teach_v what_o man_n be_v and_o what_o they_o can_v do_v be_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n they_o be_v orphan_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v all_o deceit_n and_o injure_v unméete_a to_o govern_v themselves_o and_o apt_a of_o themselves_o to_o do_v nothing_o the_o only_a remedy_n hereof_o be_v for_o christ_n to_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n the_o which_o he_o promise_v he_o will_v do_v first_o of_o all_o therefore_o the_o disciple_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o their_o own_o imbecility_n to_o the_o end_n they_o distrust_v themselves_o may_v depend_v upon_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n alone_o second_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o a_o remedy_n put_v they_o in_o good_a comfort_n because_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v they_o 19_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v also_o m._n by_o this_o threaten_a christ_n declare_v that_o the_o unbeleving_fw-mi be_v unworthy_a to_o enjoy_v his_o sight_n any_o more_o c._n &_o withal_o prosecute_v the_o commendation_n of_o his_o special_a grace_n which_o ought_v to_o suffice_v the_o disciple_n to_o ease_v they_o and_o to_o take_v away_o their_o sorrow_n when_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n i_o will_v nevertheless_o be_v with_o you_o r._n for_o short_o after_o my_o death_n i_o will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o i_o will_v be_v always_o present_a with_o you_o bu_n by_o the_o world_n he_o mean_v carnal_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o regenerate_v which_o be_v unbeléeving_a and_o live_v in_o the_o world_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n also_o this_o word_n shall_v see_v be_v by_o a_o metaphor_n transfer_v from_o the_o body_n to_o the_o mind_n therefore_o carnal_a man_n and_o unbeléever_n do_v not_o see_v do_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o very_a man_n who_o by_o his_o death_n bring_v to_o life_n and_o redéeme_v all_o mankind_n from_o damnation_n c._n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o secret_a behold_v of_o christ_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o his_o presence_n and_o absence_n according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o must_v behold_v his_o power_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v always_o behold_v and_o have_v present_a with_o they_o christ_n in_o spirit_n though_o he_o be_v far_o from_o they_o in_o body_n because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o c._n these_o word_n may_v be_v construe_v two_o way_n either_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o or_o else_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v red_a several_o as_o that_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a shall_v live_v because_o christ_n love_v but_o the_o former_a scence_n seem_v best_a to_o agree_v out_o of_o the_o which_o we_o may_v gather_v this_o doctrine_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o life_n m._n for_o we_o be_v dead_a and_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n 3._o colos_n 3_z 3._o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o noat_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o will_v be_v see_v of_o his_o disciple_n and_o not_o of_o the_o world_n because_o christ_n can_v be_v see_v but_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o which_o the_o world_n be_v quite_o void_a the_o world_n see_v not_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o death_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o blindness_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o begin_v to_o live_v in_o spirit_n it_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v christ_n 20._o that_o day_n shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o r._n many_o by_o this_o daye_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v hear_v understande_v the_o feast_n of_o penticoste_n c._n but_o he_o rather_o understand_v all_o that_o time_n from_o the_o first_o declaration_n of_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o the_o last_o resurrection_n for_o than_o they_o begin_v to_o know_v but_o it_o be_v a_o sertaine_a sciend_a instruction_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o so_o effectual_o wrought_v in_o they_o for_o to_o this_o effect_n his_o word_n tend_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v by_o a_o certain_a trifle_a speculation_n and_o vain_a curiosity_n what_o the_o sacred_a and_o mystical_a union_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o be_v and_o again_o what_o manner_n of_o union_n be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n but_o rather_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o know_v he_o when_o he_o pour_v into_o we_o his_o life_n by_o the_o secret_a efficacy_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v the_o experiment_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o which_o we_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o bu_n but_o the_o son_n after_o one_o manner_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o after_o another_o manner_n in_o us._n for_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o we_o by_o participation_n by_o grace_n or_o by_o the_o felloweship_n of_o the_o spirit_n concern_v beath_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o sixth_o and_o ten_o chapter_n and_o sainte_n john_n in_o the_o epistle_n say_v hereby_o we_o know_v that_o we_o abide_v in_o he_o 1●_n i._o yoh_n 4_z 1●_n and_o he_o in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o of_o his_o spirit_n c._n therefore_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o he_o because_o we_o be_v graff_v into_o his_o body_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o righteousenesse_n and_o of_o all_o goodness_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o we_o because_o he_o declare_v by_o the_o efficacye_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o authoure_n
do_v not_o here_o plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v no_o other_o office_n than_o to_o establish_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o to_o ratefye_v and_o confirm_v that_o for_o ever_o which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o what_o end_n then_o pertain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n 5_o math._n 17_o 5_o not_o to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o to_o establish_v and_o confirm_v that_o voice_n by_o which_o we_o be_v command_v to_o hear_v he_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v diminish_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n which_o say_v he_o shall_v glorify_v i_o &c_n &c_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o whoale_n world_n and_o you_o shall_v tell_v forth_o my_o most_o glorious_a vyctorye_n over_o the_o world_n sin_n death_n satan_n and_o hell_n the_o which_o shall_v turn_n to_o my_o great_a glory_n m._n let_v they_o note_n and_o consider_v this_o which_o brag_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o instruction_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o to_o gloryfye_v our_o strength_n wisdom_n and_o meritte_n but_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v glorify_v but_o in_o our_o heart_n mortefy_v and_o void_a of_o our_o own_o ryghteousnesse_n c._n when_o christ_n add_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v take_v of_o his_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o we_o receive_v his_o spirit_n to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v enjoy_v his_o benefit_n for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v we_o sure_o it_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o be_v wash_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o sin_n be_v abolish_v by_o his_o death_n in_o we_o that_o our_o old_a man_n be_v crucefy_v that_o his_o resurrection_n be_v of_o power_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o final_o that_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o all_o his_o benefit_n and_o grace_n therefore_o the_o spirit_n geve_v we_o nothing_o which_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n but_o take_v from_o christ_n to_o geve_v unto_o us._n the_o like_a also_o we_o must_v think_v of_o doctrine_n 30._o i_o cor._n i_o 30._o for_o he_o do_v not_o illuminate_v we_o to_o draw_v we_o any_o whit_n from_o christ_n but_o to_o fulfil_v that_o which_o christ_n speak_v namely_o how_o that_o christ_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n for_o it_o open_v unto_o we_o those_o treasure_n which_o be_v hide_v in_o christ_n to_o be_v short_a the_o spirit_n do_v in_o rich_a we_o with_o no_o other_o treasure_n than_o with_o the_o riches_n of_o christ_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n christ_n may_v be_v gloryfy_v 15._o all_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v be_v i_o therefore_o say_v i_o not_o unto_o you_o that_o he_o shall_v take_v of_o i_o and_o show_n unto_o you_o c._n because_o christ_n have_v seem_v to_o have_v speak_v arrogant_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o deminishe_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n in_o say_v because_o he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o he_o straight_o way_n make_v mention_v of_o the_o father_n and_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v all_o that_o from_o the_o father_n which_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n but_o when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o the_o father_n have_v be_v he_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o mediatoure_n because_o they_o shall_v draw_v and_o receive_v from_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o same_o he_z always_o have_v respect_n unto_o we_o and_o speak_v of_o his_o riches_n to_o invite_v we_o to_o enjoy_v the_o same_o and_o among_o the_o benefit_n which_o by_o his_o hand_n we_o receive_v from_o the_o father_n he_o reckon_v up_o the_o spirit_n m._n let_v we_o consider_v therefore_o of_o what_o dignity_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v if_o all_o thing_n be_v his_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o father_n then_o be_v he_o of_o equal_a wisdom_n power_n and_o dignity_n with_o the_o father_n 11.27_o mat._n 11.27_o and_o lord_n of_o all_o hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v christ_n 3.21_o i_o cor._n 3.21_o and_o christ_n be_v god_n m._n howbeit_o christ_n speak_v not_o so_o much_o here_o of_o his_o secréete_n power_n as_o he_o do_v of_o his_o office_n 16._o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o again_o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o for_o i_o go_v to_o the_o father_n m._n the_o time_n be_v even_o at_o hand_n that_o the_o disciple_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v very_o heavy_a and_o sorrowful_a the_o which_o sorrow_n straight_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o great_a joy_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o this_o everlasting_a joy_n to_o come_v he_o comfort_v their_o mind_n again_o with_o these_o word_n b._n i_o therefore_o speak_v unto_o you_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n by_o who_o hereafter_o you_o must_v be_v teach_v all_o thing_n because_o the_o time_n be_v very_o short_a which_o i_o have_v to_o tarry_v with_o you_o in_o the_o flesh_n for_o even_o anon_o i_o shall_v be_v carry_v to_o death_n but_o short_o after_o i_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o you_o again_o but_o after_o another_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o my_o spirit_n c._n howbeit_o othersome_a expound_v it_o thus_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o when_o i_o be_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a but_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n because_o straight_o after_o i_o shall_v be_v receyve_v into_o heaven_n but_o by_o this_o consolation_n he_o do_v rather_o mitigate_v the_o sorrow_n which_o they_o may_v conceyve_v by_o his_o absence_n affyrm_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v long_o and_o so_o he_o commend_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v absurd_a that_o he_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v see_v when_o he_o dwell_v in_o his_o disciple_n by_o his_o spyrite_n for_o although_o he_o be_v not_o discern_v with_o our_o eye_n yet_o notwithstanding_o presence_n faith_n behold_v christ_n presence_n his_o presence_n be_v feel_v and_o see_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v true_a which_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o know_v that_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n 5.6_o 2._o cor_n 5.6_o we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n for_o we_o walk_v by_o faith_n not_o after_o outward_a appearance_n therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o glass_n for_o we_o in_o the_o which_o christ_n will_v be_v see_v according_a to_o this_o say_n of_o paul_n though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n 6_z 2._o cor._n 5_o 6_z now_o yet_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o henceforth_o no_o more_o 17._o then_o say_v some_o of_o his_o disciple_n between_o themselves_o what_o be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v 18._o unto_o we_o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o again_o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o and_o that_o i_o go_v to_o the_o father_n m._n the_o matter_n itself_o of_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n speak_v as_o it_o be_v rare_a and_o seldom_o hear_v so_o be_v it_o obscure_a unto_o the_o disciple_n and_o not_o easy_a to_o be_v conceyve_v r._n for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v deaf_a at_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o cross_n and_o understand_v nothing_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o cross_n for_o how_o oftentimes_o have_v he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o he_o will_v go_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o take_v possession_n of_o a_o new_a kingdom_n how_o often_o have_v he_o make_v mention_v of_o his_o passion_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o understande_v the_o same_o so_o blind_a be_v our_o nature_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o require_v not_o carnal_a hearer_n but_o spiritual_a bearer_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o so_o few_o do_v truelye_o understand_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_n that_o not_o all_o but_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n not_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v thus_o among_o themselves_o for_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o like_a capascity_n and_o wisdom_n 19_o jesus_n perceive_v that_o they_o will_v ask_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o do_v you_o inquire_v among_o yourselves_o of_o that_o i_o say_v after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o again_o after_o a_o while_n you_o shall_v see_v i_o r._n this_o be_v a_o example_n of_o gentleness_n and_o carefulness_n of_o gentleness_n in_o
three_o day_n he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o and_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o his_o sight_n c._n therefore_o because_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o include_v in_o it_o victory_n christ_n do_v very_o apt_o compare_v the_o sorrow_n which_o be_v conceive_v thereby_o to_o the_o sorrow_n of_o a_o woman_n traveilinge_v with_o child_n 2_o rom._n ●_o 2_o which_o sorrow_n be_v turn_v to_o joy_n by_o the_o reward_n of_o a_o child_n but_o because_o this_o be_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o all_o creature_n to_o travail_v and_o groan_n untyll_o the_o last_o day_n of_o redemption_n let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v sigh_v and_o groan_n also_o untyll_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o continual_a misery_n of_o this_o present_a life_n do_v plain_o see_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o faithful_a be_v like_a unto_o a_o woman_n which_o have_v bring_v forth_o a_o child_n in_o that_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n and_o be_v already_o enter_v into_o the_o celestial_a kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o everlasting_a life_n but_o they_o be_v like_a unto_o great_a belly_a and_o traveil_v woman_n in_o that_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v captive_n in_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o flesh_n wait_v for_o that_o happy_a state_n which_o lie_v hide_v from_o their_o eye_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v see_v his_o disciple_n again_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o shall_v return_v to_o visit_v they_o with_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o sight_n of_o he_o for_o ever_o r._n for_o christ_n see_v we_o when_o he_o send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o as_o by_o a_o seal_n he_o seal_v and_o confirm_v our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o ever_o even_o as_o he_o add_v say_v and_o your_o joy_n shall_v no_o man_n take_v from_o you_o this_o perpetuity_n and_o everlasting_a continuance_n do_v make_v the_o joy_n more_o precious_a for_o hereuppon_o it_o follow_v that_o those_o sorrow_n be_v light_o i7_n 2_z cor_fw-la 4_o i7_n and_o patient_o to_o be_v suffer_v which_o be_v momentany_a also_o by_o these_o word_n christ_n show_v what_o be_v true_a joy_n transitorye_n joy_n of_o the_o world_n be_v transitorye_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n be_v transitory_a and_o sudden_o vanishinge_v away_o for_o that_o they_o consist_v in_o corcuptible_a and_o momentanie_n thing_n therefore_o we_o must_v come_v unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v eternal_a stabillitie_n and_o continuance_n jesus_n joy_n everlasting_a be_v jesus_n because_o therefore_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o godly_a it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v everlasting_a for_o christ_n die_v no_o more_o 6.9_o rom._n 6.9_o death_n have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o he_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a never_o want_v true_a matter_n of_o joy_n m_o wherefore_o that_o be_v not_o true_a sorrow_n which_o be_v turn_v into_o everlasting_a joy_n neither_o be_v that_o true_a joy_n which_o be_v convert_v into_o sorrow_n which_o shall_v never_o have_v a_o endde_a the_o wicked_a then_o be_v most_o unhappye_a and_o miserable_a which_o joy_n in_o this_o world_n and_o shall_v afterward_o sorrow_n weep_v and_o lament_v for_o ever_o and_o contrariwise_o most_o bless_a and_o happy_a be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n which_o mourn_n weep_v and_o lament_v in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v joy_n for_o ever_o and_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v here_o that_o there_o joy_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a agréeeth_n with_o that_o he_o say_v before_o 23._o and_o in_o that_o day_n shall_v you_o ask_v i_o no_o question_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v geve_v it_o you_o c._n after_o that_o christ_n have_v promise_v joy_n unto_o his_o disciple_n which_o shall_v come_v of_o invincible_a fortitude_n and_o constancy_n now_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o another_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o light_n of_o understanding_n as_o by_o the_o same_o they_o shall_v reach_v unto_o heavenly_a mystery_n at_o this_o time_n when_o christ_n talk_v with_o they_o there_o be_v such_o great_a dulness_n in_o they_o that_o every_o scruple_n cause_v they_o to_o stay_v an●_n to_o doubt_n for_o as_o child_n which_o learn_v but_o their_o primer_n can_v read_v on_o verse_n through_o without_o stop_n and_o stay_v even_o so_o in_o every_o word_n of_o christ_n almost_o there_o be_v one_o offence_n or_o other_o which_o make_v the_o disciple_n to_o stay_v but_o within_o awhile_o after_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o have_v no_o more_o stay_n and_o let_v but_o be_v famylier_o acquaint_v with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n insomuche_o that_o they_o go_v forward_o without_o stoomble_v through_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o god_n m_o moreover_o there_o be_v some_o who_o by_o that_o day_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n make_v mention_v here_o understand_v that_o time_n which_o pass_v between_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n othersome_a more_o true_o extend_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o end_n f_o the_o world_n from_o that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o apostl_n differ_v nothing_o from_o child_n nay_o be_v more_o like_a unto_o block_n than_o man_n how_o sudden_o they_o be_v change_v by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o may_v plain_o see_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n i7_n act_n 2_o i7_n therefore_o whereas_o he_o deni_v that_o they_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n he_o have_v this_o meaning_n 8_o joel_n ●_o 8_o r._n in_o that_o day_n in_o the_o which_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o you_o of_o the_o which_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o c._n not_o because_o the_o apostle_n do_v cease_v even_o when_o they_o be_v most_o wise_a to_o demand_v at_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o be_v only_o here_o a_o comparison_n of_o a_o double_a state_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v that_o their_o rudeness_n shall_v be_v corect_v in_o such_o wise_a that_o they_o which_o do_v stut_v and_o stammer_v in_o every_o small_a thing_n shall_v easy_o attain_v to_o all_o perfection_n to_o this_o agree_v the_o say_n of_o hieremy_n and_o they_o shall_v teach_v no_o more_o every_o man_n his_o neighbore_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o shall_v all_o know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o of_o they_o unto_o the_o great_a he_o do_v not_o take_v away_o prophesy_v neither_o do_v he_o abolish_v that_o doctrine_n which_o ought_v to_o flourish_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o rather_o deni_v that_o groase_a ignorance_n shall_v take_v place_n when_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n the_o which_o ignorance_n possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n the_o soon_o of_o righteousness_n illuminate_v they_o by_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o spirit_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n a._n for_o the_o exposition_n of_o this_o place_n read_v the_o 13._o and_o 14._o verse_n of_o the_o 14._o chapter_n go_v before_o 24._o hitherto_o have_v you_o ask_v nothing_o in_o my_o name_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a a._n this_o seem_v at_o the_o first_o fight_n very_o absurd_a that_o the_o apostle_n ask_v nothing_o before_o that_o time_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o luke_n make_v mention_v that_o they_o desire_v christ_n to_o teach_v they_o a_o for●_n of_o prayer_n teach_v we_o say_v they_o to_o pray_v a_o john_n teach_v his_o disciple_n again_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o they_o be_v so_o long_o conversaunt_a with_o christ_n but_o that_o they_o observe_v that_o rule_n and_o form_n of_o prayer_n which_o the_o law_n prescribe_v beside_o this_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o they_o use_v to_o pray_v though_o for_o temporal_a thing_n only_o see_v christ_n teach_v they_o first_o to_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o the_o which_o they_o perform_v afterward_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o their_o petition_n lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n but_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n seek_v to_o bring_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a mediator_n c._n for_o he_o have_v already_o sufficient_o declare_v himself_o unto_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a same_o mediator_n but_o their_o knowledge_n be_v so_o obscure_a that_o they_o can_v not_o as_o yet_o frame_v their_o prayer_n aright_o in_o his_o name_n and_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o they_o pray_v unto_o god_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o
himself_o love_v you_o becase_n you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o have_v beleve_v that_o i_o come_v out_o from_o god_n a._n these_o word_n seem_v quite_o and_o clean_o to_o overthrow_v all_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v to_o his_o diciple_n concern_v intercession_n to_o his_o father_n objection_n for_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v superfluous_a for_o he_o to_o pray_v unto_o the_o father_n do_v he_o not_o before_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v pray_v unto_o the_o father_n i6_n john_n i4_n i6_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o also_o saint_n john_n in_o another_o place_n call_v he_o our_o advocate_n 34_o rom_n 8_o 34_o and_o paul_n testefi_v that_o he_o make_v interssion_n for_o us._n 25_o heb_fw-mi 7_z 25_o the_o same_o also_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o hebrews_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o simple_o deny_v in_o this_o place_n answer_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o intercessor_n but_o only_o show_v that_o his_o father_n be_v so_o ready_a of_o himself_o to_o help_v they_o that_o he_o will_v willing_o geve_v unto_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v ask_v intercessor_n christ_n our_o intercessor_n b._n therefore_o christ_n do_v always_o make_v intercession_n for_o those_o that_o be_v he_o until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v full_a for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o and_o in_o the_o six_o and_o twenty_o verse_n how_o that_o it_o be_v not_o nedfull_a that_o he_o shall_v pray_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o this_o respect_n that_o he_o have_v already_o obtain_v his_o father_n favour_n toowarde_n they_o who_o at_o that_o time_n do_v both_o favour_n and_o embrace_v they_o as_o the_o faithful_a beléever_n in_o christ_n m._n this_o place_n be_v dilygente_o to_o be_v noated_a special_o against_o those_o which_o have_v thrust_v in_o the_o intercession_n of_o dead_a saint_n into_o the_o church_n because_o we_o have_v no_o access_n unto_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n say_v they_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v intercessor_n for_o we_o even_o as_o we_o can_v be_v admit_v unto_o the_o speech_n of_o a_o king_n before_o we_o use_v some_o of_o his_o household_n officer_n as_o mean_n for_o us._n but_o christ_n do_v not_o in_o this_o sort_n set_v his_o father_n before_o we_o who_o he_o make_v so_o gentle_a and_o love_a unto_o we_o that_o he_o say_v he_o will_v ask_v nothing_o for_o we_o as_o for_o man_n void_a and_o destitute_a of_o his_o love_n a._n this_o fatherly_a affection_n towards_o we_o 24_o esa_n 65_o 24_o the_o lord_n himself_o also_o testify_v by_o his_o prophet_n say_v it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o before_o they_o call_v i_o will_v answer_v and_o before_o they_o ask_v i_o will_v hear_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o doubt_v but_o to_o find_v the_o father_n favourable_a unto_o we_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n for_o he_o always_o hear_v he_o see_v he_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v and_o most_o dear_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v c._n moreover_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o pray_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o let_v we_o not_o imagine_v any_o carnal_a thing_n of_o he_o as_o though_o be_v fall_v down_o at_o his_o father_n foot_n make_v such_o humble_a prayer_n for_o we_o but_o the_o power_n and_o force_v of_o his_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o he_o have_v once_o purchase_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n toward_o we_o be_v always_o lyvelye_a and_o effectual_a and_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v once_o shed_v for_o our_o righteousness_n be_v a_o continual_a intercession_n for_o us._n because_o you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o have_v beleve_v m._n christ_n in_o these_o word_n express_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n toward_o we_o show_v how_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o the_o love_n of_o he_o do_v get_v unto_o we_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o obtain_v all_o thing_n at_o his_o hand_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o you_o have_v love_v i_o and_o believe_v my_o gospel_n therefore_o i_o have_v reconcile_v you_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v now_o your_o father_n you_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o i_o you_o be_v make_v fellow_n heir_n of_o all_o god_n grace_n wherefore_o by_o i_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o father_n c._n by_o these_o word_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a bond_n of_o our_o conjunction_n with_o god_n and_o we_o be_v join_v by_o true_a faith_n which_o come_v from_o sincere_a affection_n the_o which_o he_o note_v by_o the_o name_n of_o love_n for_o none_o do_v believe_v pure_o in_o christ_n but_o they_o which_o love_v he_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n wherefore_o by_o this_o word_n love_n he_o have_v well_o express_v the_o force_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o so_o be_v god_n begin_v to_o love_v we_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o love_v christ_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o begin_v of_o our_o salvation_n be_v of_o ourselves_o because_o we_o prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o contrary_a to_o this_o we_o have_v many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n i0_n i_o john_n 4_o i0_n as_o these_o i_o will_v make_v they_o to_o love_v i_o again_o not_o because_o we_o love_v he_o first_o it_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o repeat_v more_o place_n i7_n rom_n 4_o i7_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o certain_a than_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o lord_n cale_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v 36.26_o ezech_v 36.26_o that_o he_o restoar_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n 65._o easy_n 65._o that_o he_o make_v of_o stoany_a heart_n heart_n of_o flesh_n that_o he_o appear_v unto_o they_o which_o seek_v he_o not_o and_o that_o he_o love_v all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o before_o they_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v love_v of_o god_n when_o we_o love_v christ_n because_o we_o have_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n who_o before_o we_o abhor_v as_o a_o severe_a and_o cruel_a judge_n toward_o us._n aug._n therefore_o the_o father_n love_v we_o because_o we_o love_v the_o son_n have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o we_o may_v love_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 28_o i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n again_o 1_o leave_n the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n c._n this_o sentence_n commend_v unto_o we_o the_o divine_a love_n in_o christ_n for_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n in_o he_o if_o we_o dydde_v not_o apprehend_v his_o divine_a power_n for_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n the_o two_o pillar_n of_o faith_n shall_v profit_v we_o little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o except_o his_o heavenlye_a power_n be_v annex_v unto_o they_o therefore_o we_o must_v embrace_v christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n as_o the_o counsel_n and_o power_n of_o god_n let_v we_o also_o consider_v to_o what_o end_n he_o come_v out_o from_o god_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v be_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n sanctification_n righteousness_n and_o redemption_n m._n for_o this_o cause_n he_o say_v not_o simpe_o i_o be_o send_v of_o god_n into_o this_o world_n 6_z john_n 1_z 6_z but_o i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n john_n also_o be_v send_v of_o god_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n also_o be_v send_v of_o who_o notwithstanding_o that_o can_v be_v say_v which_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o himself_o say_v i_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v consider_v that_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n 27_o philiq_n 27_o which_o be_v no_o other_o r_o but_o some_o will_v say_v how_o go_v he_o out_o from_o the_o father_n which_o be_v never_o separate_v from_o he_o and_o how_o go_v he_o out_o of_o the_o world_n when_o as_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o be_v order_v and_o govern_v by_o his_o power_n and_o care_n he_o go_v out_o from_o the_o father_n because_o he_o abase_v himself_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n because_o he_o be_v contemn_v crucify_a and_o slay_v by_o the_o world_n but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o he_o may_v go_v unto_o the_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o may_v bring_v man_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v make_v he_o lord_n over_o sin_n the_o cross_n death_n and_o hell_n c._n therefore_o he_o
he_o add_v another_o cause_n why_o he_o pray_v so_o earnest_o for_o his_o disciple_n because_o short_o they_o shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n by_o enjoy_v the_o which_o they_o be_v as_o yet_o cheerful_a so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversaunt_a with_o they_o he_o gather_v they_o and_o nourish_v they_o even_o as_o a_o hen_n do_v her_o chicken_n under_o his_o wing_n and_o now_o goo_v away_o he_o desire_v of_o the_o father_n to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o the_o which_o he_o do_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o for_o he_o seek_v to_o remedy_v their_o fear_n that_o they_o may_v stay_v themselves_o upon_o god_n himself_o to_o who_o he_o now_o deliver_v they_o as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n m._n therefore_o now_o we_o see_v how_o the_o most_o faithful_a and_o love_a lord_n be_v not_o so_o desirous_a to_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n that_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o disciple_n but_o careful_o consider_v in_o what_o state_n to_o leave_v they_o after_o his_o departure_n hereof_o come_v no_o small_a consolation_n when_o we_o hear_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o more_o careful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o he_o when_o he_o leave_v they_o according_a to_o his_o corporal_a presence_n for_o hereof_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o we_o also_o at_o this_o day_n labour_v in_o the_o world_n be_v regard_v of_o he_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o send_v help_v unto_o we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o trouble_n even_o from_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n holy_a either_o keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n m._n he_o know_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o many_o danger_n in_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v by_o his_o father_n providence_n c._n for_o all_o his_o prayer_n tend_v too_o that_o end_n lest_o his_o disciple_n shall_v be_v discourage_v as_o though_o their_o corporal_a state_n shall_v be_v the_o worse_a by_o the_o miss_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o their_o master_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o apostle_n shall_v abide_v persecution_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o gospel_n wherefore_o i_o pray_v that_o they_o faint_a not_o under_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o the_o cross_n m._n he_o add_v in_o thy_o name_n for_o because_o they_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v suffer_v many_o adversity_n in_o the_o world_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v in_o or_o by_o his_o name_n r._n for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o strong_a tower_n 18.10_o prou._n 18.10_o therefore_o the_o name_n of_o god_n can_v defend_v the_o faithful_a man_n from_o all_o evil_n and_o from_o the_o dart_n of_o satan_n c._n the_o sum_n than_o be_v this_o when_o the_o corporal_a sight_n of_o chryste_n be_v take_v from_o the_o disciple_n they_o sustain_v no_o loss_n because_o god_n receyve_v they_o into_o his_o protection_n who_o power_n be_v everlasting_a he_o ascribe_v the_o manner_n of_o save_v say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o for_o those_o who_o the_o heavenly_a father_n have_v decree_v to_o save_v he_o gather_v into_o the_o holy_a unity_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o man_n to_o agree_v together_o in_o one_o he_o add_v this_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o for_o than_o our_o unity_n shall_v be_v happy_a if_o so_o be_v it_o set_v forth_o the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n even_o as_o the_o wax_n in_o the_o which_o the_o king_n or_o signet_n be_v print_v carry_v the_o mark_n or_o print_v of_o the_o same_o a._n but_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n read_v the_o ten_o chapter_n go_v before_o begin_v at_o the_o .30_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o verse_n follow_v 12._o while_o i_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o world_n i_o keep_v they_o in_o thy_o name_n those_o that_o thou_o give_v i_o have_v i_o keep_v and_o none_o of_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o that_o lose_v child_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v c._n christ_n say_v that_o he_o have_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o father_n name_n because_o he_o make_v himself_o only_o a_o minister_n which_o do_v nothing_o but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god._n he_o therefore_o thynk_v it_o not_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v now_o perish_v as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o god_n by_o his_o departure_n be_v extinguish_v or_o bead_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v hitherto_o i_o have_v confirm_v the_o apostle_n with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o i_o have_v leave_v nothing_o undoone_v that_o may_v keep_v they_o within_o the_o band_n and_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o i_o have_v keep_v they_o that_o none_o shall_v perish_v but_o only_o that_o judas_n iscarioth_n of_o who_o fall_n the_o scripture_n before_o testify_v and_o now_o because_o i_o be_o goo_v away_o i_o commit_v they_o to_o thy_o charge_n for_o i_o shall_v be_v delyver_v too_o the_o adversary_n and_o shall_v be_v leave_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o in_o deryde_v i_o they_o shall_v say_v he_o save_v other_o himself_o he_o can_v not_o save_v wherefore_o i_o resign_v they_o over_o into_o thy_o hand_n that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v from_o all_o evil_a c._n but_o this_o seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o chryste_n shall_v set_v over_o unto_o god_n the_o offyce_v of_o save_v and_o preserve_v as_o though_o he_o have_v end_v the_o course_n of_o his_o life_n leass_v to_o be_v their_o keeper_n but_o this_o be_v thus_o answer_v that_o chryste_n speak_v only_o here_o of_o the_o visible_a custody_n which_o have_v a_o end_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversaunte_a on_o earth_n he_o need_v not_o to_o borrow_v any_o other_o power_n to_o preserve_v his_o disciple_n but_o all_o this_o be_v refer_v too_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o a_o tyme._n but_o now_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o want_n but_o the_o least_o help_n to_o lyfte_v up_o their_o eye_n to_o heaven_n whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o chryste_n do_v no_o less_o preserve_v the_o faithful_a at_o this_o day_n than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o time_n paste_n but_o after_o a_o other_o manner_n because_o the_o devyne_a majesty_n open_o shine_v in_o he_o r._n for_o if_o so_o be_v christ_n keep_v and_o preserve_v he_o before_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o satisfy_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o faithful_a concern_v joy_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v he_o keep_v they_o now_o see_v he_o have_v justify_v they_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n for_o now_o our_o salvation_n be_v more_o near_o than_o when_o we_o believe_v and_o see_v when_o as_o yet_o we_o be_v sinner_n chryste_n die_v for_o we_o much_o more_o now_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n 5.6_o rom._n 5.6_o shall_v be_v save_v through_o he_o from_o wrath_n m._n furthermore_o let_v we_o note_v here_o how_o chryste_n say_v that_o he_o have_v keep_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o world_n for_o such_o be_v this_o world_n that_o the_o elect_n have_v need_n of_o god_n preservation_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o c._n whereas_o he_o make_v exception_n here_o of_o judas_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n for_o although_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elect_n and_o of_o god_n flock_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o office_n make_v he_o seem_v so_o to_o be_v neither_o will_v any_o man_n have_v think_v otherwise_o of_o he_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o that_o office_n therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o grammar_n the_o exception_n be_v improper_a but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o matter_n all_o man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o behove_v christ_n so_o to_o speak_v moreover_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o eternal_a election_n of_o god_n be_v void_a in_o the_o destruction_n of_o judas_n he_o add_v héerewithal_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n by_o which_o word_n he_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o his_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n which_o sudden_o appear_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n know_v unto_o god_n it_o appear_v therefore_o very_a well_o that_o chryste_n know_v for_o who_o he_o pray_v and_o for_o who_o he_o pray_v not_o m._n by_o this_o perdition_n of_o judas_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o judas_n persecute_v the_o truth_n of_o chryste_n for_o filthy_a gain_n whereby_o they_o manifest_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o perdition_n see_v the_o same_o happen_v too_o
gospel_n not_o to_o live_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o that_o their_o light_n may_v shine_v before_o man_n not_o to_o be_v prince_n of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o christ_n who_o come_v not_o to_o be_v minister_v unto_o 20.28_o mat._n 20.28_o but_o to_o minister_v himself_o and_o to_o give_v his_o life_n a_o redemption_n for_o many_o m._n wherefore_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n mark_v well_o and_o see_v how_o they_o defend_v their_o lordship_n which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o christ_n 19_o and_o for_o their_o sake_n sanctify_v i_o myself_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o truth_n r._n to_o sanctify_v be_v to_o ceparate_v to_o divine_a use_n c._n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n he_o do_v more_o plain_o explicate_v from_o whence_o that_o sanctification_n do_v come_v which_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n namely_o because_o he_o have_v consecrate_v himself_o to_o the_o father_n that_o his_o holiness_n might_n appertain_v unto_o us._n for_o as_o the_o blessing_n be_v extend_v from_o the_o first_o fruit_n to_o the_o whole_a increase_v even_o so_o the_o spirit_n ●f_n god_n do_v sprinkle_v we_o with_o the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o not_o only_o by_o imputation_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o righteousness_n but_o he_o be_v also_o say_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o sanctificaon_n 1.30_o .1_o cor._n 1.30_o because_o after_o a_o sort_n he_o offer_v we_o to_o the_o father_n that_o by_o his_o spirit_n we_o may_v be_v renew_a into_o true_a holiness_n and_o although_o this_o sanctification_n pertain_v to_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v special_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n because_o than_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o true_a priest_n which_o consecrate_v the_o temple_n the_o altar_n all_o the_o vessel_n 29.1_o exod._n 29.1_o and_o the_o people_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n a._n even_o as_o before_o time_n in_o the_o law_n it_o be_v shadow_v r._n christ_n therefore_o sanctifi_v himself_o that_o be_v he_o be_v make_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o which_o he_o be_v glorify_v he_o offer_v and_o sacrifice_v himself_o that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v make_v the_o instrument_n and_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n sanctification_n sanctification_n m._n for_o christ_n have_v not_o so_o sanctify_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v abide_v profane_a and_o far_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o sanctification_n but_o although_o we_o be_v save_v by_o his_o only_a holiness_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o be_v sanctify_v also_o by_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o spirit_n they_z which_o be_v void_a of_o the_o same_o promise_v unto_o themselves_o in_o vain_a the_o fellowship_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6.4_o rom._n 6.4_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o his_o death_n that_o likewise_n as_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n even_o so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v 12.1_o roma_fw-it 12.1_o offer_v up_o your_o body_n a_o quick_a sacrifice_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o be_v your_o reasonable_a service_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sense_n &_o meaning_n i_o sanctify_v myself_o that_o be_v i_o die_v for_o they_o that_o they_o by_o my_o death_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n and_o may_v be_v make_v the_o holy_a vessel_n of_o god_n by_o the_o reveal_v spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n m._n this_o the_o apostle_n comprehend_v in_o these_o word_n 10.10_o hebr._n 10.10_o in_o the_o which_o will_v we_o be_v make_v holy_a even_o by_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o in_o the_o truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o truth_n even_o as_o christ_n say_v before_o therefore_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a clean_o acts._n 15.9_o faith_n make_v all_o thing_n clean_o consist_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n upon_o the_o which_o faith_n be_v ground_v by_o which_o god_n purify_v the_o heart_n without_o this_o all_o thing_n be_v profane_a and_o unclean_a 20._o nevertheless_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o they_o alone_o but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v on_o i_o through_o their_o preach_n r._n three_o christ_n pray_v for_o all_o the_o faithful_a which_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o very_o bring_v great_a consolation_n for_o if_o so_o be_v through_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o believe_v in_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v doubt_v but_o that_o with_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v under_o god_n protection_n so_o that_o none_o of_o we_o can_v perish_v this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o quiet_a haven_n into_o the_o which_o whosoever_o enter_v he_o be_v safe_a from_o all_o peril_n of_o shipwreck_n for_o his_o word_n be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n as_o if_o he_o have_v solemn_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v careful_a for_o our_o salvation_n r._n and_o first_o of_o all_o this_o place_n confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n against_o those_o which_o very_o contemptuous_o extinuate_a and_o dispraise_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o apostle_n 20.9_o prou._n 20.9_o for_o that_o they_o be_v man_n also_o subject_a unto_o error_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v man_n in_o life_n and_o in_o work_n for_o who_o can_v say_v my_o heart_n be_v clean_a but_o they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o human_a but_o by_o the_o divine_a ministry_n whereupon_o christ_n also_o pray_v for_o those_o which_o shall_v believe_v through_o their_o preach_n furthermore_o let_v our_o conscience_n be_v confirm_v against_o the_o world_n and_o against_o all_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o world_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n pray_v the_o father_n hear_v and_o the_o father_n hear_v what_o remain_v but_o his_o grace_n and_o ready_a affection_n toward_o we_o c._n let_v this_o also_o suffice_v we_o which_o know_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o the_o apoples_n though_o the_o world_n condemn_v we_o a_o thousand_o time_n namely_o that_o christ_n acknowledge_v we_o for_o his_o special_a charge_n and_o commend_v we_o to_o his_o father_n 11.41_o joh._n 11.41_o of_o who_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v hear_v c._n when_o he_o add_v through_o their_o preach_n he_o very_o well_o express_v the_o forre_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n m._n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n also_o 17_o rom._n 10_o 17_o when_o he_o say_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o preach_v in_o the_o world_n 16.15_o mar._n 16.15_o c._n woe_n then_o unto_o the_o papist_n who_o faith_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o rule_n that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a most_o blasphemous_o to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o shipman_n hose_n and_o to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v their_o direction_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o let_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o same_o faith_n only_o be_v approve_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o judge_n alone_o which_o be_v conceyve_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o there_o shall_v no_o certain_a testimony_n any_o where_o else_o be_v find_v than_o in_o their_o write_n we_o must_v also_o note_v what_o faith_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v bring_v forth_o this_o christ_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v which_o believe_v in_o i_o let_v now_o the_o jew_n turk_n and_o romishe_a rabble_n glory_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o every_o one_o believe_v and_o in_o who_o he_o believe_v every_o doctrine_n have_v his_o faith_n but_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n beget_v only_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o this_o faith_n alone_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o promise_n concern_v everlasting_a life_n 21._o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o and_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o r._n that_o which_o christ_n pray_v for_o his_o apostle_n he_o now_o also_o pray_v for_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v of_o one_o faith_n
we_o must_v be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o his_o body_n b._n therefore_o when_o we_o be_v absolutelye_o godly_a it_o shall_v appear_v that_o we_o be_v dear_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n r._n and_o we_o must_v well_o remember_v the_o prayer_n contain_v in_o this_o chapter_n for_o if_o so_o be_v christ_n pray_v for_o himself_o for_o his_o apostle_n and_o for_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o effectual_a prayer_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o son_n which_o be_v obediente_a to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v repulse_v wherefore_o let_v we_o be_v ful_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n neither_o life_n neither_o angel_n neither_o rule_n nether_a power_n nether_a thing_n present_v nor_o thing_n to_o come_v neither_o height_n nor_o depth_n neither_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n our_o lord_n ❧_o the_o .18_o chapter_n 1._o when_o jesus_n have_v speak_v these_o word_n he_o go_v forth_o with_o his_o disciple_n over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n where_o be_v a_o garden_n into_o the_o which_o he_o enter_v with_o his_o disciple_n m._n in_o this_o chapter_n the_o evangelist_n begyn_v to_o declare_v the_o history_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n in_o the_o declaration_n whereof_o he_o omit_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n the_o which_o he_o do_v of_o purpose_n even_o as_o he_o have_v set_v down_o many_o thing_n worthy_a of_o remembrance_n which_o the_o other_o three_o have_v let_v pass_v with_o silence_n r._n therefore_o hitherto_o be_v note_v the_o sermon_n which_o christ_n make_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n by_o which_o christ_n most_o full_o declare_v and_o manifest_v himself_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v what_o grace_n and_o goodness_n he_o contain_v in_o himself_o special_o under_o the_o cross_n also_o he_o pray_v that_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v be_v sanctify_v that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o that_o the_o love_n with_o the_o which_o the_o father_n love_v he_o may_v be_v in_o they_o therefore_o his_o sermon_n and_o prayer_n be_v end_v he_o go_v forth_o with_o his_o disciple_n over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n m._n some_o think_v that_o this_o brook_n be_v call_v the_o brook_n of_o ceder_n because_o many_o cedar_n tree_n grow_v about_o the_o same_o c._n but_o it_o be_v very_o like_v notwithstanding_o that_o this_o name_n come_v up_o through_o error_n for_o of_o the_o valley_n or_o brook_v of_o cedron_n there_o be_v mention_v oftentimes_o make_v in_o the_o scripture_n m._n where_o the_o hebrew_n word_n do_v not_o signify_v cedar_n tree_n but_o dimness_n or_o darkness_n r._n concern_v the_o which_o brook_n we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o king_n 23.4_o 2._o kin._n 15.23_o 4._o kin_n 23.4_o c._n this_o place_n therefore_o be_v so_o call_v because_o of_o the_o darkness_n because_o it_o be_v a_o deep_a valley_n and_o much_o shadow_v howbeit_o we_o will_v not_o contend_v much_o about_o this_o special_o we_o have_v to_o consider_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n in_o name_v this_o place_n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o christ_n go_v willing_o to_o death_n he_o come_v into_o that_o place_n which_o he_o know_v be_v well_o know_v unto_o judas_n and_o to_o what_o end_n but_o only_o to_o offer_v himself_o to_o judas_n and_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o he_o come_v not_o unto_o this_o place_n without_o foresight_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v see_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o which_o be_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v m._n wherefore_o christ_n pass_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n enter_v into_o the_o garden_n not_o to_o flee_v from_o his_o persecuter_n but_o that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o that_o agony_n which_o be_v to_o come_v according_a to_o god_n appointment_n if_o he_o go_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n because_o he_o will_v flee_v away_o his_o best_a way_n have_v be_v through_o the_o wilderness_n and_o not_o to_o have_v enter_v into_o this_o garden_n c._n he_o go_v not_o therefore_o to_o seek_v a_o place_n to_o hide_v himself_o in_o but_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o garden_n that_o he_o may_v have_v more_o liberty_n to_o pray_v the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v that_o he_o go_v out_o unto_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n 26.36_o mat_n 26.36_o and_o they_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o certain_a place_n which_o be_v call_v g●thsemane_n the_o which_o have_v no_o discrepance_n see_v that_o the_o history_n of_o david_n also_o say_v 15.23_o 2._o kin_n 15.23_o that_o the_o people_n when_o they_o have_v pass_v over_o the_o brook_n cedron_n go_v toward_o the_o way_n of_o olivet_n 2._o judas_n also_o which_o betray_v he_o know_v the_o place_n for_o jesus_n ofttimes_o resort_v thither_o with_o his_o disciple_n r._n as_o christ_n be_v not_o betray_v but_o of_o a_o apostle_n and_o his_o chief_a disciple_n and_o that_o to_o those_o to_o who_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o who_o office_n and_o function_n be_v a_o shadow_n and_o type_n of_o he_o 7.52_o persecution_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o disciple_n mat._n 23.37_o act._n 7.52_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o scribe_n even_o so_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v almost_o never_o betray_v but_o of_o such_o as_o know_v the_o same_o and_o be_v friend_n in_o show_n and_o very_o seldom_o it_o suffer_v persecution_n of_o stranger_n the_o gentile_n kill_v not_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o jew_n which_o boast_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o phariseis_n cast_v out_o the_o apostles_n antechrist_n be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o deny_v christ_n but_o a_o boster_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o he_o persecute_v the_o gospel_n so_o the_o hypocritical_a monk_n priest_n bishops_z pope_n and_o such_o like_a have_v only_o the_o outward_a name_n of_o christian_n and_o seek_v to_o betray_v and_o to_o destroy_v christ_n 3._o judas_n then_o after_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o band_n of_o man_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n come_v thither_o with_o lantern_n and_o torch_n and_o weapon_n r._n with_o what_o force_n &_o strength_n do_v judas_n set_v upon_o christ_n or_o by_o what_o power_n do_v the_o soldier_n of_o judas_n persecute_v the_o gospel_n not_o with_o reason_n &_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n except_o peradventure_o the_o same_o be_v wrest_v to_o serve_v their_o turn_n not_o with_o probable_a argument_n but_o with_o the_o corporal_a sword_n with_o weapon_n with_o affliction_n &_o all_o kind_n of_o torment_n if_o this_o be_v to_o overcome_v who_o have_v great_a conquest_n &_o victory_n than_o tyrant_n fight_v with_o cruelty_n and_o if_o this_o be_v to_o play_v the_o champion_n who_o be_v more_o bold_a &_o stout_a than_o théeve_n read_v the_o .26_o of_o mat._n beginning_n at_o the_o .47_o verse_n concern_v the_o other_o two_o verse_n follow_v also_o read_v the_o same_o chapter_n 6._o assoon_o then_o as_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o he_o they_o go_v backward_o and_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n c._n the_o evangelist_n show_v what_o great_a virtue_n and_o power_n the_o lord_n breathe_v with_o one_o voice_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o wicked_a have_v power_n over_o he_o no_o further_o than_o he_o give_v they_o leave_v he_o gentle_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a same_o who_o they_o seek_v for_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o cast_v they_o prostrate_a upon_o the_o earth_n even_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v with_o the_o violent_a puff_n or_o blast_n of_o a_o whirl_n wound_n or_o with_o the_o flash_a stroke_n of_o lightning_n therefore_o he_o want_v no_o power_n to_o restrain_v their_o hand_n if_o it_o have_v so_o please_v he_o but_o he_o will_v obey_v his_o father_n by_o who_o decree_n he_o know_v he_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_v to_o death_n aug._n for_o where_o be_v now_o this_o ambushment_n of_o soldier_n where_o be_v now_o their_o terror_n and_o fortification_n of_o weapon_n one_o voice_n strike_v repulse_v and_o prostrate_v without_o force_n of_o weapon_n the_o outrageous_a hateful_a multitude_n and_o terrible_a with_o weapon_n for_o god_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o sempiternal_a day_n be_v so_o shadow_v and_o cover_v with_o human_a member_n that_o darkness_n seek_v with_o lantern_n and_o fyrebrande_n to_o kill_v the_o same_o what_o will_v he_o do_v which_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v which_o do_v this_o that_o he_o may_v be_v judge_v but_o this_o purpose_n be_v to_o put_v in_o proof_n that_o efficacy_n which_o the_o prophet_n esay_n attribute_v to_o his_o word_n amongst_o other_o the_o mighty_a
power_n of_o christ_n the_o prophet_n repeat_v this_o 11.4_o esa_n 11.4_o that_o he_o shall_v strike_v the_o earth_n with_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o shall_v slay_v the_o wicked_a with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o lip_n 2.8_o 2._o thes_n 2.8_o the_o apostle_n paul_n suspend_v the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o prophecy_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v daily_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v fall_v with_o their_o fury_n and_o pride_n at_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n but_o then_o when_o they_o fall_v which_o come_v to_o bind_v christ_n be_v show_v a_o visible_a token_n of_o that_o fear_n which_o all_o the_o wicked_a manger_n their_o head_n feel_v within_o they_o when_o christ_n speak_v to_o they_o by_o his_o minister_n moreover_o see_v this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n who_o property_n it_o be_v to_o raise_v up_o miserable_a man_n which_o lie_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n he_o will_v use_v no_o doubt_n this_o power_n towards_o we_o to_o exalt_v we_o up_o into_o heaven_n r._n and_o this_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o the_o wicked_a judgement_n be_v to_o the_o godly_a consolation_n for_o at_o other_o time_n christ_n comfort_v his_o disciple_n when_o they_o be_v afraid_a 24.39_o mat._n 14.27_o luk._n 24.39_o with_o these_o word_n i_o be_o he_o also_o why_o be_v you_o trouble_v it_o be_v i_o therefore_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n threaten_v to_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o law_n be_v in_o these_o word_n manifefest_o to_o be_v see_v for_o moses_n say_v the_o lord_n shall_v geve_v thou_o a_o tremble_a heart_n 57.21_o deut._n 28.65_o esa_n 57.21_o and_o look_v too_o return_v till_o thy_o eye_n fall_v out_o and_o a_o sorrowful_a mind_n 110.1_o psal_n 110.1_o and_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o wicked_a have_v no_o peace_n m._n let_v the_o wicked_a therefore_o consider_v what_o shall_v befall_v on_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o contain_v a_o figure_n of_o that_o which_o happen_v and_o shall_v happen_v to_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n namely_o confusion_n and_o utter_a destruction_n it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v his_o footstool_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n here_o consist_v of_o judas_n the_o hypocrite_n and_o false_a apostle_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a soldier_n in_o these_o we_o see_v what_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v oftentimes_o some_o be_v hypocrite_n some_o be_v superstitious_a and_o other_o some_o worldling_n but_o in_o due_a time_n when_o christ_n shall_v show_v himself_o they_o shall_v utter_o be_v destroy_v and_o though_o they_o be_v lyft_v up_o aloft_o yet_o shall_v they_o be_v cast_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n flat_a and_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o dust_n a._n for_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v but_o shall_v be_v like_o the_o dust_n 1.5_o psal_n 1.5_o which_o the_o wound_n scatter_v away_o from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n 7._o then_o ask_v he_o they_o again_o who_o seek_v you_o they_o say_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n c._n hereby_o it_o do_v appear_v how_o great_a the_o blindness_n be_v with_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n strike_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o how_o horrible_a their_o obstinacy_n be_v after_o that_o satan_n have_v bewitch_v they_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n the_o ox_n and_o the_o ass_n when_o they_o fall_v have_v some_o feeling_n but_o these_o man_n have_v have_v manifest_a experience_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n do_v no_o less_o secure_o go_v forward_o than_o if_o they_o have_v not_o see_v so_o much_o as_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o man_n in_o he_o nay_o judas_n himself_o be_v not_o move_v let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o to_o fear_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o reprobate_n be_v suffer_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o satan_n be_v more_o senseless_a than_o brute_n beast_n for_o satan_n no_o doubt_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o so_o great_a wickedness_n 8._o jesus_n answer_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o that_o i_o be_o he_o if_o you_o seek_v i_o therefore_o let_v these_o go_v their_o way_n 9_o that_o the_o saying_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o thou_o give_v i_o have_v i_o not_o lose_v one_o r._n although_o he_o be_v take_v yet_o he_o retain_v his_o authority_n and_o power_n still_o for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n can_v not_o be_v bind_v for_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o go_v away_o without_o hurt_n except_o the_o adversary_n have_v be_v restrain_v of_o their_o fury_n by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o this_o commandment_n by_o the_o same_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n he_o restore_v to_o malchus_n his_o ear_n 22.51_o luk._n 22.51_o that_o we_o may_v learn_v the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o impotency_n and_o weakness_n a._n but_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o he_o which_o deliver_v other_o to_o delyver_v himself_o also_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n c._n but_o he_o mind_v to_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a shephearde_n to_o defend_v his_o flock_n he_o see_v the_o raven_a of_o the_o wolf_n he_o tarry_v not_o until_o they_o come_v to_o the_o sheep_n of_o which_o he_o be_v appoint_v the_o keeper_n but_o wythstand_v they_o betyme_o wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o doubt_n so_o often_o as_o wicked_a man_n or_o the_o devil_n rise_v up_o against_o we_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v by_o and_o by_o the_o same_o help_n moreover_o christ_n have_v by_o his_o example_n prescribe_v a_o rule_n to_o the_o shepherd_n which_o they_o must_v follow_v if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v due_o fulfil_v their_o office_n that_o the_o saying_n may_v be_v fulfil_v r._n the_o evangelist_n allege_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o be_v effectual_a for_o if_o so_o be_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v effectual_a how_o can_v the_o disciple_n have_v escape_v this_o peril_n and_o shun_v such_o wylfull_a madness_n of_o the_o people_n their_o adversary_n special_o peter_n who_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n notwithstanding_o this_o sentence_n seem_v to_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o order_n which_o seem_v rather_o to_o appertain_v to_o man_n soul_n than_o to_o their_o body_n for_o christ_n dydde_v save_v and_o preserve_v the_o apostle_n in_o safety_n as_o touch_v their_o body_n to_o the_o end_n but_o he_o rather_o speak_v this_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o continual_a danger_n and_o in_o death_n itself_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n shall_v be_v in_o safety_n i_o answer_v the_o evangelist_n speak_v not_o simple_o of_o their_o corporal_a life_n but_o mean_v rather_o that_o christ_n spare_v they_o for_o a_o time_n provide_v for_o their_o everlasting_a salvation_n let_v we_o consider_v how_o great_a their_o imbecility_n be_v as_o yet_o what_o will_v they_o have_v do_v think_v you_o if_o they_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o pinch_n see_v therefore_o chryste_n will_v not_o tempt_v they_o above_o their_o strengthe_n he_o deliver_v they_o from_o eternal_a destruction_n and_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v a_o general_a doctrine_n namely_o that_o although_o our_o faith_n be_v prove_v by_o many_o temptation_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o shall_v never_o come_v into_o extreme_a peril_n but_o he_o will_v geve_v unto_o we_o strengthe_n and_o ability_n to_o bear_v the_o same_o aug._n therefore_o because_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o sufficient_o confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n to_o retain_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v both_o deny_v christ_n and_o also_o perysh_v the_o lord_n will_v save_v they_o m._n furthermore_o they_o be_v special_o choose_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o be_v not_o only_o so_o give_v unto_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o also_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o life_n unto_o other_o and_o to_o serve_v chryste_n for_o this_o office_n they_o be_v to_o be_v preserve_v wherefore_o if_o they_o have_v be_v take_v and_o slay_v of_o their_o enemy_n they_o have_v perish_v to_o chryste_n unto_o who_o they_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n concern_v that_o which_o follow_v until_o you_o come_v to_o the_o .19_o verse_n read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .26_o of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o .51_o verse_n 19_o the_o high_a priest_n then_o ask_v jesus_n of_o his_o disciple_n &_o of_o his_o doctrine_n r._n this_o high_a priest_n be_v caiphas_n for_o annas_n have_v straightway_o post_v over_o christ_n unto_o caiphas_n m._n these_o thing_n and_o many_o mo_z of_o the_o which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n
doctrine_n bring_v a_o double_a profit_n the_o first_o be_v that_o all_o they_o which_o will_v not_o err_v in_o seek_v christ_n must_v lift_v up_o their_o mind_n to_o heaven_n the_o second_o be_v 3.1_o col._n 3.1_o that_o all_o they_o which_o come_v to_o he_o must_v cast_v off_o from_o they_o carnal_a affection_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v but_o go_v unto_o my_o brethren_n m._n christ_n send_v mary_n unto_o his_o apostle_n who_o he_o call_v his_o brethren_n for_o they_o be_v son_n of_o the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n who_o only_a beget_v son_n he_o be_v c._n but_o the_o inestimable_a goodness_n of_o christ_n do_v shine_v in_o this_o that_o he_o ordain_v &_o appoint_v woman_n to_o be_v witness_n unto_o the_o apostle_n of_o his_o resurrection_n for_o the_o ambassage_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o our_o salvation_n &_o contain_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n howbeit_o we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o this_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o as_o it_o be_v accidental_a i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n by_o the_o name_n of_o ascend_v he_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o which_o we_o speak_v even_o now_o namely_o that_o he_o therefore_o rise_v again_o not_o to_o abide_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o heavenly_a life_n &_o to_o draw_v all_o the_o faithful_a thither_o with_o he_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o great_a emphasis_n &_o force_n in_o this_o word_n i_o ascend_v because_o christ_n reach_v his_o hand_n unto_o his_o disciple_n lest_o they_o shall_v seek_v felicity_n in_o any_o other_o place_n then_o in_o heaven_n for_o where_o our_o treasure_n be_v there_o also_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o our_o heart_n shall_v be_v but_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o do_v ascend_v therefore_o we_o also_o must_v ascend_v except_o we_o will_v be_v separate_v from_o he_o 6.21_o mat._n 6.21_o moreover_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v assend_v to_o god_n he_o do_v put_v away_o all_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n which_o the_o apostle_n may_v conceive_v by_o his_o deperture_n for_o he_o geve_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v always_o be_v present_a by_o his_o divine_a presence_n with_o those_o that_o be_v he_o by_o his_o ascend_v the_o distance_n of_o the_o places_z be_v note_v but_o although_o christ_n be_v absent_a in_o body_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o he_o be_v god_n his_o power_n everye_o where_o shed_v forth_o do_v plain_o declare_v his_o spiritual_a presence_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v he_o ascend_v unto_o god_n but_o only_o that_o he_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n may_v reign_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n m._n also_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o my_o god_n but_o add_v also_o and_o to_o your_o father_n and_o your_o god_n therefore_o they_o which_o be_v christ_n have_v the_o same_o god_n and_o the_o same_o father_n that_o he_o have_v c._n for_o this_o be_v a_o inestimable_a benefit_n that_o the_o faithful_a may_v sure_o trust_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o god_n of_o christ_n be_v their_o god_n and_o father_n also_o this_o trust_n be_v found_v upon_o christ_n be_v no_o rashness_n moreover_o christ_n call_v the_o father_n his_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n this_o therefore_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o whole_a person_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o unity_n because_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n we_o have_v also_o here_o to_o note_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n but_o we_o by_o adoption_n only_o but_o such_o be_v the_o stability_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o have_v by_o he_o that_o the_o devil_n with_o all_o his_o force_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o shake_v the_o same_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v always_o call_v he_o our_o father_n who_o have_v adopt_v we_o in_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n a._n christ_n therefore_o be_v so_o call_v our_o brother_n that_o therewithal_o also_o we_o must_v account_v he_o our_o lord_n and_o prince_n 18._o marry_o magdalene_n come_v and_o tell_v the_o disciple_n that_o she_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n and_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v such_o thing_n unto_o she_o a._n so_o soon_o as_o the_o lord_n command_v marry_o magdalene_n obey_v who_o notwithstanding_o as_o it_o be_v like_a be_v much_o greeve_v that_o she_o shall_v depart_v from_o he_o and_o she_o tell_v unto_o the_o disciple_n two_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o lord_n commandment_n the_o one_o be_v that_o she_o shad_v see_v the_o lord_n she_o say_v not_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v rise_v but_o that_o she_o have_v see_v he_o that_o she_o may_v bring_v tiding_n of_o that_o which_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a this_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o be_v tell_v unto_o the_o apostle_n by_o she_o who_o before_o have_v make_v they_o suspect_v the_o remove_n away_o of_o the_o lord_n body_n the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o say_v unto_o she_o go_v unto_o my_o brethren_n and_o tell_v they_o i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n etc._n etc._n let_v we_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o he_o command_v mary_n to_o tell_v the_o disciple_n not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o but_o also_o that_o he_o be_v about_o to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n to_o his_o father_n they_o be_v to_o be_v call_v from_o a_o earthly_a opinion_n as_o well_o as_o mary_n the_o which_o they_o can_v hardly_o put_v away_o have_v conceyve_v the_o same_o in_o their_o mind_n before_o his_o passion_n wherefore_o luke_n report_v that_o they_o say_v lord_n will_v thou_o at_o this_o time_n restore_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n 19_o the_o same_o day_n at_o night_n which_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n when_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v where_o the_o disciple_n be_v assemble_v together_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v jesus_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o peace_n be_v unto_o you_o m._n saint_n john_n omit_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o other_o evangelist_n c._n he_o now_o begin_v to_o show_v here_o how_o that_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o christ_n the_o disciple_n be_v confirm_v in_o his_o resurrection_n bu_n for_o he_o set_v his_o lively_a body_n before_o his_o ten_o disciple_n to_o be_v see_v and_o touch_v c._n and_o it_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o they_o come_v altogether_o in_o one_o place_n that_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o more_o sure_a and_o manifest_a bu_n the_o apostle_n be_v miserable_o disperse_v by_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o the_o lord_n himself_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n zacharie_n have_v tell_v they_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v but_o now_o take_v unto_o they_o a_o good_a courage_n again_o they_o come_v together_o look_v now_o for_o more_o happy_a success_n wherefore_o if_o so_o be_v at_o any_o time_n the_o tempest_n of_o affliction_n do_v disperse_v we_o let_v we_o return_v again_o unto_o our_o fellowship_n for_o we_o shall_v not_o want_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n c._n christ_n very_o delte_v most_o gentel_o with_o they_o because_o he_o hold_v they_o in_o suspense_n but_o till_o the_o evening_n when_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v m._n the_o manner_n of_o this_o people_n be_v not_o to_o shut_v their_o door_n in_o the_o day_n tyme._n for_o this_o cause_n the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n come_v together_o in_o a_o secret_a assembly_n be_v afeard_a of_o the_o fury_n and_o outrage_n of_o the_o jew_n c_o and_n in_o that_o they_o come_v together_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o godly_a affection_n but_o in_o that_o they_o shut_v up_o themselves_o in_o secret_a we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v some_o infirmity_n in_o they_o for_o the_o stout_a and_o most_o valiant_a man_n sometime_o be_v afraid_a but_o notwithstanding_o we_o may_v perceive_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o afeard_a that_o they_o bewray_v the_o infyrmitie_n of_o their_o faith_n r._n the_o apostle_n fear_v the_o jew_n as_o yet_o because_o their_o heart_n be_v not_o yet_o seal_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o afterward_o the_o spirit_n be_v reveal_v the_o door_n be_v not_o only_o open_v but_o also_o the_o apostle_n preach_v christ_n public_o abroad_o fear_v neither_o thretninge_n nor_o death_n nor_o hell_n nor_o satan_n but_o deryde_v they_o even_o as_o trifle_n and_o sport_n of_o so_o great_a power_n be_v the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n c._n and_o we_o have_v here_o a_o example_n worthy_a to_o be_v note_v for_o although_o
prophet_n perfect_v god_n and_o perfect_v man_n the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o high_a legate_n of_o the_o father_n the_o only_a author_n of_o perfect_a felicity_n bu_n who_o by_o his_o death_n have_v put_v away_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v restore_v to_o life_n the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o among_o man_n there_o be_v none_o find_v meet_a to_o bring_v such_o notable_a matter_n to_o pass_v as_o to_o reconcile_v we_o to_o the_o father_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o destroy_v death_n to_o overthrow_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o bring_v unto_o we_o true_a righteousness_n and_o salvation_n therefore_o god_n send_v and_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n a._n for_o all_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v beoome_n unprofitable_a 3.12_o psal_n 14.3_o rom._n 3.12_o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o c._n moreover_o see_v the_o name_n of_o son_n do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o son_n by_o adoption_n but_o by_o nature_n wherefore_o in_o this_o name_n the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v m._n read_v more_o hereof_o in_o our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o .16_o verse_n of_o the_o .16_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o that_o in_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n bu_n now_o saint_n john_n add_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n to_o restrain_v the_o desire_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v more_o than_o be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v life_n for_o what_o wickedness_n be_v this_o not_o to_o be_v content_v with_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n m._n the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v jesus_n be_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o end_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v everlasting_a life_n bu_n for_o both_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o say_v 1.9_o haba_n 2.4_o rom._n 1.17_o gal._n 3.11_o 1._o pet._n 1.9_o that_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v live_v by_o faith_n concern_v our_o restore_n to_o life_n by_o christ_n read_v our_o annotation_n upon_o the_o three_o chapter_n before_o the_o 16._o verse_n through_o his_o name_n bu_n he_o add_v this_o to_o declare_v that_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o merit_n and_o virtue_n of_o chryste_n for_o in_o show_v that_o our_o righteousness_n come_v hy_z the_o grace_n of_o chryste_n he_o exclude_v all_o man_n merit_n m._n therefore_o we_o have_v life_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v through_o christ_n for_o christ_n in_o christ_n &_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o be_v christ_n and_o do_v apperteine_a to_o his_o name_n if_o so_o be_v we_o believe_v in_o he_o for_o we_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n a._n also_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o we_o have_v life_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n only_o 2.12_o act._n 4.12_o act._n 10.43_o 1._o ihon._n 2.12_o such_o be_v these_o which_o i_o have_v quote_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o xxj_o chapter_n 1_o afterward_o do_v jesus_n show_v himself_o again_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o the_o sea_n of_o tyberias_fw-la and_o on_o this_o wise_a show_v he_o himself_o bu_n some_o think_v that_o this_o chapter_n be_v not_o add_v by_o john_n but_o by_o some_o other_o because_o saint_n john_n conclude_v his_o history_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o they_o see_v not_o that_o in_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o argument_n only_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o which_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v manifest_v at_o jerusalem_n &_o that_o in_o this_o one_o &_o twentieth_o chapter_n those_o thing_n be_v name_v 26.32_o mat._n 26.32_o by_o which_o he_o approve_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n in_o galilee_n therefore_o of_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n he_o conclude_v the_o narration_n of_o those_o sign_n which_o be_v show_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v special_o promise_v that_o straight_o after_o his_o resurrcection_n he_o will_v go_v into_o galilee_n and_o there_o show_v himself_o alyve_a again_o unto_o his_o disciple_n s._n john_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o omit_v any_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_v history_n have_v in_o this_o chapter_n add_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o resurrection_n make_v in_o galilee_n m._n but_o when_o this_o apparition_n be_v make_v we_o can_v sertayne_o tell_v for_o that_o the_o euangeliste_n speak_v not_o of_o any_o time_n it_o be_v most_o sertayne_v that_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n left_a jerusalem_n and_o come_v to_o galilee_n after_o the_o eight_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n wherein_o we_o have_v to_o note_v the_o diligence_n of_o christ_n who_o seek_v to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v seek_v only_o to_o have_v make_v they_o believe_v his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v do_v that_o out_o of_o hand_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o same_o neither_o be_v it_o need_v full_a to_o use_v many_o sign_n and_o apparition_n for_o that_o cause_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a once_o only_o too_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n except_o they_o do_v percist_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o by_o invincible_a constancy_n it_o be_v necessary_a too_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v they_o by_o many_o sign_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n so_o also_o we_o have_v need_n to_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o have_v once_o receyve_v therefore_o christ_n have_v so_o order_v his_o church_n that_o we_o may_v not_o only_o be_v illumine_v but_o also_o confirm_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o word_n by_o sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o often_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o there_o be_v together_o simon_n peter_n and_o thomas_n which_o be_v call_v didimus_n etc._n etc._n c._n saynct_v john_n declare_v that_o christ_n appear_v to_o seven_o of_o his_o disciple_n among_o who_o he_o recken_v thomas_n not_o for_o estimation_n sake_n so_o much_o as_o that_o we_o may_v the_o soon_o believe_v by_o his_o testimony_n m._n simon_n peter_n be_v of_o bethsaida_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n border_v upon_o the_o sea_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v call_v the_o lake_n of_o genazareth_n but_o here_o the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n this_o peter_n &_o the_o rest_n s._n john_n name_v as_o witnese_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n &_o sertainety_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 3._o simon_n peter_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o go_v a_o fish_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o also_o will_v go_v with_o thou_o they_o go_v their_o way_n &_o enter_v into_o a_o ship_n immediate_o and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o bu_n here_o first_o be_v set_v down_o the_o occasion_n by_o which_o the_o manifestation_n be_v make_v for_o when_o simon_n peter_n be_v come_v into_o his_o own_o country_n with_o his_o disciple_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v idle_a and_o live_v upon_o other_o man_n cost_n and_o charge_n go_v a_o fysh_a and_o take_v with_o he_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n c._n and_o this_o travail_n of_o peter_n in_o fysh_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v unséemely_a &_o unméete_a for_o his_o office_n he_o be_v only_o ordain_v a_o apostle_n by_o breathe_v as_o yet_o as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n but_o he_o cease_v for_o a_o little_a while_n until_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o new_a power_n for_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o command_v to_o go_v forth_o to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v but_o be_v only_o admonish_v of_o his_o calling_n to_o come_v that_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o choose_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o vain_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o do_v that_o which_o they_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v and_o which_o become_v private_a man_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v call_v of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v other_o business_n the_o apostle_n paul_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o race_n of_o preach_v get_v his_o live_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o have_v another_o consideration_n for_o so_o the_o time_n give_v he_o leave_v least_o handy_a labour_n may_v draw_v he_o away_o from_o teach_v but_o peter_n and_o his_o fellow_n because_o they_o be_v free_a from_o all_o public_a function_n give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o fish_v bu_n therefore_o herein_o labour_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o all_o and_o idleness_n condemn_v and_o that_o night_n catch_v they_o nothing_o m._n in_o that_o they_o take_v nothing_o it_o
say_v that_o he_o return_v unto_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v certain_o believe_v that_o by_o his_o departure_n they_o shall_v loose_v none_o of_o those_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v bring_v because_o he_o shed_v and_o pour_v out_o of_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n the_o power_n and_o efect_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n therefore_o he_o leave_v the_o world_n when_o he_o put_v of_o our_o infirmity_n be_v receyve_v up_o into_o heaven_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o grace_n because_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o govern_v the_o whoale_n world_n 29._o his_o disciple_n say_v unto_o he_o loe_o now_o taulke_v thou_o plain_o and_o speak_v no_o proverb_n 30._o now_o be_v we_o sure_a that_o thou_o know_a all_o thing_n &_o nede_a not_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v ask_v thou_o any_o question_n â–ª_o therefore_o believe_v we_o that_o thou_o come_v from_o god_n m._n the_o disciple_n because_o they_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o suffitient_o know_v themselves_o boast_n in_o these_o word_n that_o they_o know_v more_o then_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o know_v the_o lord_n have_v say_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v to_o you_o by_o proverbe_n the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o i_o shall_v no_o more_o speak_v unto_o you_o by_o proverbe_n but_o i_o shall_v show_v you_o plain_o of_o my_o fathere_o the_o discipl_v contrary_a wise_n say_v lo_o now_o talk_v thou_o plain_o and_o speak_v no_o proverb_n they_o think_v that_o they_o understode_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o proverbial_a obscuritiy_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n b._n but_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v at_o large_a declare_v his_o great_a love_n towards_o they_o they_o also_o in_o like_a manner_n begin_v to_o burn_v in_o love_n towards_o he_o they_o think_v that_o they_o conceyve_v much_o and_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o more_o than_o they_o can_v either_o conceive_v or_o do_v r._n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o opinion_n and_o not_o knowledge_n presumption_n and_o not_o faith_n in_o that_o they_o confess_v now_o that_o they_o plain_o understande_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o they_o understande_v not_o as_o yet_o what_o this_o mean_v that_o he_o go_v to_o the_o father_n for_o to_o understande_v this_o they_o need_v the_o reveal_n spirit_n c._n in_o that_o therefore_o they_o exclaim_v now_o that_o their_o master_n speak_v playnelye_a and_o without_o figure_n they_o go_v to_o far_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n and_o which_o also_o we_o find_v true_a at_o this_o day_n for_o he_o which_o have_v taste_v but_o a_o little_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o zealous_a and_o have_v more_o feel_v of_o faith_n than_o if_o he_o know_v and_o well_o understand_v all_o plato_n yea_o the_o sigh_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n stir_v up_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v manifest_a testimony_n that_o god_n do_v work_v by_o a_o secret_a mean_n above_o their_o capassitie_n for_o otherwise_o pavele_n will_v not_o have_v call_v they_o groaninge_n which_o can_v be_v express_v so_o that_o we_o must_v think_v that_o the_o apostle_n feel_v some_o profit_n in_o such_o wise_n that_o they_o may_v trulye_o say_v 26_o rom_n 8_o 26_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o altogether_o proverbial_a but_o they_o be_v deceyve_v in_o this_o in_o that_o they_o seem_v unto_o themselves_o to_o know_v more_o than_o they_o do_v but_o hereof_o come_v the_o error_n that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v they_o triumph_v therefore_o before_o the_o time_n even_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v think_v himself_o very_o rytche_v have_v but_o one_o piece_n of_o gold_n in_o his_o purse_n they_o gather_v by_o sertaine_a sign_n that_o christ_n proceed_v from_o god_n and_o they_o glory_n as_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o want_v but_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v far_o from_o that_o knowledge_n so_o long_o as_o they_o know_v not_o what_o christ_n shall_v be_v unto_o they_o afterward_o a._n also_o they_o plain_o enough_o declare_v their_o dulness_n in_o know_v christ_n by_o this_o that_o they_o say_v now_o be_v we_o sure_o that_o thou_o know_v all_o thing_n as_o though_o now_o and_o never_o before_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o christ_n know_v all_o thing_n and_o hereby_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o come_v out_o from_o god_n m._n to_o what_o end_n then_o have_v they_o see_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a miracle_n of_o the_o which_o notwithstanding_o nicodemus_n say_v we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v come_v a_o teacher_n from_o god_n 2_z john_n 3_o 2_z for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v the_o sign_n which_o thou_o do_v except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o 69_o john_n 6_o 69_o furthermore_o if_o so_o be_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v until_o now_o that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n what_o mean_v they_o to_o say_v before_o we_o believe_v and_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o faith_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v often_o time_n so_o weak_a in_o the_o apostle_n that_o ever_o now_o and_o than_o they_o need_v confirmation_n they_o believe_v before_o that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n into_o this_o world_n but_o that_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n have_v as_o yet_o much_o obscurity_n &_o weakness_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o receyve_v any_o light_n and_o confirmation_n by_o and_o by_o they_o thouht_v that_o they_o do_v true_o and_o certain_o know_v and_o believe_v although_o as_o yet_o when_o they_o speak_v these_o thing_n their_o knowledge_n be_v obscure_a and_o their_o faith_n weak_a enough_o the_o which_o that_o which_o follow_v do_v testefye_v 31._o jesus_n answer_v they_o do_v you_o now_o believe_v 32._o behold_v the_o hour_n draw_v nigh_o and_o be_v already_o come_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v scatter_v everye_o man_n to_o his_o own_o and_o shall_v leave_v i_o alone_a and_o yet_o be_o i_o not_o alone_a â–ª_o for_o the_o father_n be_v with_o i_o m._n christ_n speak_v not_o this_o to_o cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n their_o slowness_n to_o believe_v because_o at_o the_o last_o they_o do_v but_o begin_v to_o believe_v after_o they_o have_v see_v so_o many_o miracle_n but_o rather_o to_o forewarn_v they_o and_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o temptation_n to_o come_v c._n for_o because_o they_o stand_v to_o much_o in_o their_o own_o conceit_n christ_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o own_o infirmity_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v keep_v themselves_o within_o their_o compass_n we_o never_o know_v well_o what_o we_o lack_v and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v from_o the_o fullness_n of_o faith_n until_o we_o come_v to_o some_o seriouse_a trial_n for_o then_o proof_n make_v plain_a how_o weak_a our_o faith_n be_v which_o we_o think_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o strong_a of_o this_o christ_n put_v his_o disciple_n in_o mind_n and_o pronounce_v that_o it_o will_v short_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v forsake_v he_o and_o this_o interrogation_n of_o christ_n be_v ironical_a as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v do_v you_o thus_o boast_v as_o though_o you_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n a_o trial_n be_v at_o hand_n which_o will_v plain_o show_v your_o imbecility_n for_o persecution_n be_v like_o a_o touchstoane_n to_o prove_v faith_n a_o little_a whereof_z when_o it_o appear_v make_v they_o to_o fear_v and_o to_o stoop_v which_o before_o wear_v to_o lofty_a m._n therefore_o there_o be_v hear_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v considere_v the_o one_o be_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v strange_a if_o there_o be_v some_o which_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n believe_v and_o when_o persecution_n come_v go_v backward_o see_v the_o very_a same_o happen_v to_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o this_o infirmity_n while_o as_o yet_o we_o believe_v that_o we_o may_v think_v wiihin_n ourselves_o now_o we_o believe_v but_o when_o adversite_a come_v what_o will_v we_o then_o do_v this_o forwarn_v will_v bring_v to_o pass_v not_o only_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v wary_a and_o circomspect_a but_o also_o modest_a and_o perpetual_o depend_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n unstable_a man_n mind_n be_v unstable_a man_n mind_n be_v unstaple_n and_o changeable_a according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o state_n insomuch_o that_o the_o mind_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o most_o part_n be_v according_a to_o the_o tyme._n hobeit_n i_o be_o not_o aloan_v c._n this_o correction_n be_v add_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o nothing_o be_v derogate_a from_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v forsake_v of_o man_n for_o see_v in_o himself_o his_o power_n and_o glory_n be_v